|b{James_Hogg,_ed.}
|b{The_Rewyll_of_Seynt_Sauioure,_Volume_4:}
|b{The_Syon_Additions_for_the_Sisters}
|b{from_the_British_Library_Ms._Arundel_146.}
|b{Salzburg:_Institut_fr_Anglistik_und_Amerikanistik}
|b{der_Universitt_Salzburg,_1980.}



|p1    |r[2]


|r[THE_SYON_ADDITIONS_FOR_THE_SISTERS]


     |r[f.1c] religion.
     4.   If the ebdomadary, or any other of the quyer sustres
     at synge, come not so longe tyme before the begynnyng
     of dyuyne seruyse, as the Pater noster and Aue maria,
 |r5 may be tretably seyde.
     Of the hoole habite.
     5.   If any come to dyuyne seruyse, or to Indulgete,
     seuen psalmes, confession, procession, comonyng, chap_ter,
     De profundis, or collacion, or generally to any
|r10 conuentual acte vsed in the monastery, withoute her
     hoole habite.
     6.   If any haue oughte assygned vnto her for to rede
     or synge, and doeth not se it afore, or fulfylleth it
     not attendably.
|r15 7.   If sche that hath the kepyng of the bo*kes |r[f.1d], be_cause
     thorowe her negligence, that any boke lakke that
     schulde be occupyed in syngyng or redyng in the quyer,
     freytour, or chapter.
     8.   If any be neglygente in dyuyne seruyse, or be lyght
|r20 of lokynge aboute, or be any vnreligious demenynge of
     hede, eygh, hande, or fote, schew there any lyghtnes of
     chere, or sluggeschly slepe, or be slomry in any conuen_tual
     acte.
     9.   If any in the quyer in tyme of dyvyne seruyse, or
|r25 in tyme of the chapter or collacion, or in the freytour
     in tyme of redyng, conuentual refeccion, or drynkyng,
     or in the dortour in tyme of reste, make any noyse of



|p2    |r[2]


     vnreste.
     10.   If any suster in |r[f.2a] the rere dortour other wyse
     callyd e house of esemente, behaue her vnwomanly or
     vnreligiously, schewynge any parte bare that nedeth
 |r5 not, whyle they stonde or sytte there.
     11.   If any mystrete the ornamentes of the auter, or
     any thynge of the quyer or chirche, vessel or other,
     or els lese any vstelment of e monastery, vessel,
     instrument or other.
|r10 12.   If any come not in dewe tyme, to comen obseruaunces,
     that is to say, yf they come to the chapter, after
     tyme the beneson is ouen, or De profundis bygonne
     before the collacion, whan it is seyd for any persone
     late decesed, or els come to |r[f.2b] the freytour whan grace
|r15 is begon before mete, supper, or drynkynge.
     13.   If any defoyle any boke in any place, or trete it
     vnhonestly.
     14.   If any lightly breke her sylence.
     15.   If any speke in a lowde voyce.
|r20 16.   If any be ouen to ydelnes or to veyn speche, or
     to moche speche, or els of neglygence sayeth aught
     wherby other be hurte.
     17.   If any fynde any thynge not heres, and taketh it
     not to her, to whom perteyneth the vse therof, or to
|r25 her office, or elles leyeth it not in suche a place,
     where as suche thynges be assygned by the abbes, to be
     leyde.



|p3    |r[2]


     18.   If any take any |r[f.2c] thynge oute of oers office
     withoute leve, or go in to any sustres celle, except
     her own withoute a resonable cause, or els into any
     place that is forboden to entyr.
5  19.   If any be founde negligent in ther office or
     mynystracion.
     20.   If any behaue them in the chapter, other wyse
     than is expressed in thees addicions.
     21.   If any lyghtly afferme any thyng with any othe,
|r10 or in lyke wyse denye it, thof it be trewe that sche
     denyeth or affermeth [.]
     22.   If any myskepe her thynges, clothes or other, or
     els rente them, or breke them, or bren them.
     23.   If any dissolutly laugh, or styr any other by
|r15 worde or by dede, to do the same. |r[f.2d]
     24.   If any go vnconfessyd seuen days togyder, withoute
     a resonable impedyment, known and allowed by her gostly
     fader.
     25.   If any wasche not, or take not her clothes to
|r20 waschyng, in dewe tyme, nor in dewe tyme chaungeth
     them, lyke as e comen custom and honeste of the
     religion wylle.
     26.   If any suster speke vnreuerently to other, or in
     [skorne] calle or name other by ther proper name with_oute
|r25 thys worde put before, Suster, or any suche other
     worde accordyng to her state and degre.
     27.   If any hurte or kette her hande or fynger, or
     spyl any lycour vpon the table wherby the cloth is



|p4    |r[2]


     defoyled, or elles |r[f.3a] take any mete or drinke, withoute
     blyssyng or sayng of grace, or els taketh it oute of
     dewe tyme, openly in the syght of other, or oute of
     dewe place.
 |r5 28.   If any suster loke or besyly caste her eyen into
     the brethres quyer gasynge vpon them, excepte the tyme
     of comenynge and leuacions of the sacrament of the
     auter, and other tymes permyttyd by the rewle.
     29.   If any suster not beyng in office, offer herselfe
|r10 wylfully and withoute licence, to the speche or syghte
     of seculers, whan any of tho be within the clausure.
     Penaunce.
          For these and suche other lyght defautes, to them
     that wylfully take ther veyne and |r[f.3b] proclame them_selfe,
|r15 is to be enioyned e seuen psalmes, or e comen
     letany, or e psalmes of the passion, or a parte of our
     lady sauter, or some other thyng acordyng therto, after
     the discrecion of the presydente.
     Another penaunce.
|r20      But to them that proclame not themself wylfully,
     but be proclamyd of other, the penaunce schal be the
     gretter. And forsothe, yf suche defautes be had in
     custom, bodyly disciplyne is to be oven. For than
     they be not to be called lyght defautes, but in a
|r25 maner greuous.
     Of bodyly discipline.
     Therfor, whan the defaute of any suster is suche,
     that by reguler sentence, sche de*serueth |r[f.3c] a disci_plyne
     the suster commaunded to make her redy erto,



|p5    |r[2]


     schal stonde vp in the same place, where as sche
     knelyd before the abbes, doyng of her mantel, and
     late it fal down behynde her. And than sche vnder
     her cowle, shal take the hynder extremytees therof,
 |r5 and ley al honestly in her nekke, drawyng her armes
     oute of her sleues, to the elbowes at ferdest, and
     baryng the scholdres of her bakke as ferre, vnto
     the bare skyn; and so knelyng aene in e seyd
     place, and also enclynynge, with alle mekenes schal
|r10 take her disciplyne. Whyche sche or they schal
     eve, whom the abbes byddeth; whiche et schal be
     none of them that proclamed |r[f.3d] her, but another suster
     or sustres. And whylst any disciplyne is in euyng
     for correccion, alle the sustres, excepte the abbes
|r15 or presidente, and the euer or euers erof, schal
     not beholde her, or them that be disciplyned, but
     caste downe ther hedes and syght towarde the erth,
     as yf they scholde beholde it at ther fete, hauyng
     compassion of her suster or sustres. And whylst any
|r20 is disciplyned, sche schal nothyng say butte Mea culpa,
     I wyll amende. Whiche sche schal reherse thykke and
     many tymes, and none other schal speke at that tyme.
     Whan the abbes sayeth It suffyseth, sche or they that
     eve the disciplyne, schal cese forthwith, at e |r[f.4a]
|r25 seyd worde. Ther shal not be ouen for the disciplyne



|p6    |r[2]


     but fyue lasches, but yf the defaute be of the more
     greuous defautes, or els that sche or they schewe any
     token of rebellyon. For than the discyplyners shal
     not cese, tyl the abbes chargeth them to cese. And
 |r5 the lassches in disciplynes, owe not to be to softe or to
     esy, but moderatly  scharpe, after the commaundment of
     e abbes. And whan the disciplyne is doon, sche schal
     clothe herself aene, with the helpe of her, or one of
     them, that ave her e disciplyne. But she schal not
|r10 remoue from the same place, tylle sche haue her ful
     iugement, and tyl the abbes haue seyd to her: Go to
     our placa. |r[f.4b] Suche that may not wele for age, or
     for any other cause resonable take disciplyne, they
     schal be sette to say in recompense therof, fytene
|r15 pater nostres and fyftene Auees, or the seuen psalmes
     alone, or the letany alone, or some other thynge after
     e discrecion of the presidente. And it is gretly to
     take hede, that amonge lyghte defautes, be comprehendyd
     lyghter, and moste lyghte. Wherfor the president nedeth
|r20 to have suche discrecion, that sche kan discerne betwene
     lyghte defautes, lyghter and lyghteste.



|p7    |r[3]


     |r[f.4c] Thryd chapter. Of greuous defautes.
     It is a grevous defaute, yf any suster, officer
     or other, licensed to speke with any brother or breth_ren
     at any place, haue or mynyster, any debatous or
 |r5 frowarde wordes vnto them at any tyme. And the same
     is to be obserued and kepte to alle2 other3, specially
     to outward straungers.
     2.   If any bere false witnes aenste another, or be
     take with a lesynge made wylfully and of purpos, or
|r10 with any foule worde, or els hreketh her sylence, or
     swereth horribly be criste, or by any parte of hys
     blyssed body, or unreuerently speketh of god or of any
     saynte, and namely of our blys*sed |r[f.4d] lady.
     3.  If any despyse e comen doctryne sette of holy
|r15 faders, and euen to them4 of ther souereynes for to
     be kepte, or be to negligente to kepe them.
     4.   If any defende or maynten her own defaute, or the
     defaute of any other in the chapter, or in any other
     place or tyme.
|r20 s.  If any repreue another of her defautes for the
     whiche she was corrected, or els maliciously or skorn_fully,
     reherseth it after the correccion.
     6.   If any say any thretynge, cursynge, or vnreligious
     wordes, to her, or of her, of whom sche was proclamed.
|r25 7.   If any suster say any wordes of despyte, reprefe,
     schame, or vylony, to any sus*ter |r[f.5a] or brother.



|p8    |r[3]


     8.   If any of malyce caste oute or schew oute, the
     euelles, at any suster or brother hath doon.
     9.   If any put dedly synne, vpon any suster or brother,
     which sche may not preve by sufficient recorde or wit_nes.
 |r5 
     10.   If any lye in a wayte or in a spye, or els besyly
     and curyously serche, what other sustres or brethren
     speke betwene themselfe, that they afterwardes may re_uele
     or schewe, the saynge of the spekers, to ther
|r10 grete hurte.
     11.   If any sowe dyscorde amonge the sustres and
     brethren.
     12.   If any be founde a preuy rowner or bakbyter.
     13.   If any vnresonably grudge for mete |r[f.5b] or drynke,
|r15 or for any other thynge, and namely yf they stere
     oer to do the same.
     14.   If any, safe suster to suster, and excepte the
     kepers of the wheyles, grates, gates or entres into
     e clausures, and et not they but ther offices only,
|r20 be founde to speke alone, confession only vnyuersally
     excepte. Or els yf any whan they haue leue to speke,
     take any other with them, than suche and the same
     whom the souereyne assygneth.
     15.   If any bryng in any tydynges withoute leue of
|r25 the souereyne.
     16.   If any go vnconfessed fourtene days, thorowgh
     ther own defaute.



|p9    |r[3]


     17.   If any suster in the dayes of precepte |r[f.5c] by the
     rewle withdrawe herself than from comenynge, withoute
     licence or forbedyng of her dayly confessour or of the
     general confessoure, or els for resonable cause ex_pressed
 |r5 to one of them, and allowed by hym, to whom the
     cause is expressyd.
     18.   If any suster be comened, any other day than the
     dayes of precepte or saturdayes, withoute lycence of the
     generall confessoure.
|r10 l9.   If any breke e fastes of the religion, withoute
     leue of the souereyne; or els the fastes of the chirche,
     withoute leue and dispensacion of the generall confes_soure.
     
     20.   If any withoute leue of the sovereyne, go into
|r15 oers |r[f.5d] celle whan it is no nede, or receyue any
     thynge, of any that hath not the cure of mynystracion
     of e same thynge, and also sche that eueth it so
     withoute leue.
     21.   If any hauyng mynystracion of thynges necessary,
|r20 and have sufficiently in er office to mynyster to the
     nedy, and do not dewly and charitably, mynyster the
     necessaryes that be asked in dewe tyme and dewe places.
     22.   If any commaundyngly, or maneschynge, or vnrest_fully,
     aske ther necessaryes, or els oute of dew tyme
|r25 or dewe place, whan they ther nede myght forbere, and
     also yf any, whan they receyue newe thynges, wyl not
     delyver ther olde. |r[f.6a]
     23.   If any hauynge charge of the ates and dores of



|p10    |r[3]


     the clausure, leue them vnschette, withoute some keper
     of the same, eyther within or withoute or bothe.
     24.   If any be a customable faller into lyghte defautes.
     Penaunce.
 |r5      For these, and suche other defautes, to them that
     wylfully proclame themself, schal be oven streyte cor_reccion
     of disciplyne, with the seven psalmes and letany,
     or oure lady sawter, and sylence of one day at leste.
     Other penaunce.
|r10    But to them that wyl not proclame themselfe, but be
     proclamed of other shal be ouen two discyplynes, with
     sylence of two dayes atte |r[f.6b] leste.
        The unresonable grudgers schall absteyne them
     from that kende of mete and drynke, or of any other
|r15 thynge that they grudge aenste, after that the presi_dente
     semeth it for to be doon. And yf they may not
     withoute notable hurte bere thys penaunce, they moste
     be ponessched other wyse, after the discrecion of the
     presidente.



|p11    |r[4]


     Fourte chapter. Of more greuovs defautes.
        It is a more greuous defaute, yf any of pryde, or
     of open rebellyon, |r[f.6c] be inobedient to her souereyne by
     one hole day, or els malapertly stryve with her as sche
 |r5 wer egal to her, or malycyously say any euel of her.
     2.   If any say any wordes of iniurye to her sovereyne,
     or to any of the serches.
     3.   If any suster sowe discorde betwene any sustres or
     breren, and namely betwene the abbes and generall con_fessoure.
10
     4.   If any afferme the reuelacions of saynte birgitte
     as dremes, or els detracte them.
     5.   If any whan ei fal a chydyng or stryuyng togyder,
     yf the souereyne, or priores, or any serche, say us:
|r15 Sit nomen domini benedictum, wyl not cese, knokkyng
     themselfe vpon ther brestes, an*swerynge |r[f.6d], and saynge
     mekly and with a softe spyryte: Mea culpa, or els: Ex
     hoc nunc  et vsque in seculum, and so vtterly cese.
     6.  If any be founde in any suspecte place, spekyng
|r20 with any brother, or with any seculer persone man or
     woman.
     7.   If any publysch or reuele, the secretes of the
     religion, to any outwarde persone.
     8.  If any do any dedly synne openly, excepte lechery
|r25 and the synne aenst nature, whiche is sette amonge
     moste greuous defautes.
     9.   If any putte any cryme, upon anoer, that is to
     say dedly synne, whiche sche may not proue by suffi



|p12    |r[4]


     cient witnes, or elles bere false witnes to the profe
     therof. |r[f.7b]
     10.   If any, not required of her sovereyne swere any
     grete othe, in what case that euer it be. As yf they
 |r5 swere be the sacramente, or be the body of cryste, or
     be hys passion, or be hys crosse. or be any boke, or
     be any other thynge lyke; or els be conuicte of per_iurye.
     
     11.   If any manesch by chere or wordes to smyte
|r10 another at any tyme, or for to auenge her own iniury,
     or els by vngodly wordes repreue another of her contre
     or kynrede, or of any other sclaunderous fortune or
     chaunse, fallen at any tyme.
     12.   If any do any thefte or sacrilege.
|r15 13.   If any withoute licence and knowlage of her souer_eyne,
     sende oute or receyue |r[f.7b] in from withoute, any
     letter or 3efte.
     14.   If any make confession to any other preste, than
     is assygned her by the general confessour. For sche
|r20 that lurkyngly, fleeth her proper prelate or curate
     schryvynge her to another not hauyng ful power to
     assoyle her, wyte sche wele for trouth, that suche
     confession schal not avayle her, nor the penaunce
     therfor enioyned her.
|r25 15.   If any of contempte breke the fastes or absty_nences
     of the chirche or of the religion.
     16.   If any use sorsery or witchecrafte.
     l7.   If any withoute knowlage and licence of the
     souereyne lat in, or bryng within the clausure, any



|p13    |r[4]


     outewarde persone, e thof e |r[f.7c] persone be not suspecte.
     18.   If any, to the defence of her own trespace or of
     any other, reherse lawes, or alledge them, or induce
     any other therto, or 3eue any fauour to synne.
 |r5 19.   If any appele from reguler correccion, but yf sche
     openly e nexte chapter after go utterly from her appele.
     20.   If any with violence breke up any dore, or lokke, or
     with any sotel crafte open it, withoute licence and com_maundmente
     of the sovereyne.
|r10 2l.   If any be impression in waxe, or in any other im_pressable
     matyre, counterfete or make any seal or key.
     22.   If any be a customable doer of gre*uous |r[f.7d] defautes.
     Penaunce.
        For these defautes and suche other, they at be de_fauty
|r15 and wylfully proclame themself, schal bere thys
     penaunce seuen days. Twyes in that wyke at leste, they
     schal take bodyly disciplyne, in suche tyme as the
     abbes wyl assigne. And the monday and wensday, they
     shal be serued and contente with one maner of potage,
|r20 and one maner of flesch or fysche and smalle ale, but
     yf it be double feste. For than they schal be serued
     as other be, excepte pytaunce, wyne, and frute; and
     the fryday they schal haue but brede and smal ale, and
     one maner of potage. Neuertheles, in alle more double
|r25 festes |r[f.8a] lyke to cristmas day and suche other, they
     schal be serued altogyder as other be, and they schal
     fulfylle the fryday penaunce, the wensday before or



|p14    |r[4]


     after. Sonday, tuesdaye, thursday, and saturday, they
     schal be serued as in smale dowble festes, withoute
     pytaunce, wyne, and frute as it is seyd before, and
     all these seuen dayes, they schal kepe streyte silence,
 |r5 loweste place in ther order in all conuentuall
     actes. And al thys tyme they schal not be comened, nor
     mynyster in the chirche nor come into the quyer, with_oute
     special leue or commaundemente of the souereyne.
     And 3et suche leue is not to be graunted withoute grete
|r10 nede and resona*ble |r[f.8b] cause; for al thys tyme, they
     stonde in maner of censures of the religion, into tyme
     they haue performed ther penaunce.
     Oer penaunce.
        To them that wyll not proclame themselfe, but be
|r15 proclamed of other, the seyd penaunce schal be encresyd
     in every partye after the discrecion of the souereyne.
        If any apele from reguler correccion, they schal
     besyde the seyd penaunce be put into pryson, wnto the
     nexte visitacion of the buschop, berynge in the mene
|r20 tyme the penaunce of most grevous defautes.



|p15    |r[5]


     |r[f.8c] Fyfte chapter. Of most greuous defautes.
        It is a most greuous defaute, yf any be conuycte
     of properte, for the whiche, penaunce is taxed in the
     rewle. Whiche penaunce, yf any propertary refuse to
 |r5 do, sche schal be put into pryson.
     2.   If any forsake obstynatly, to accepte and fulfyl
     the penaunce enioyned her of the presidente.
     3.   If any go away in apostasy, or elles attempte
     or assay, to go ouer the walles of the clausure.
|r10 4.   If any stonde vnobedient and rebelle to her souer_eyne,
     two hoole dayes.
     5.   If any conspire a3enste her souereyne, or be con_federyd,
     or els werke to the subuersion of the order,
     or |r[f.8d] to the destruccion of the pryuyleges, constitu_cions,
|r15 addicions, statutes, ordinary iniunccions; or
     els of ambicion, rankour or hate, labour to the pri_uacion
     of the pryores, serches, or of any officer of
     the order.
     6.   If any diffame or sclaunder the abbes or confes_sour,
|r20 suster or brother of any cryme, al yf they were
     defauty in the same.
     7.   If any stele or destroy any comen register, or
     any comen euydence, or els put oute or sette in any
     thynge in the comen registyrs or comen bokes, with_oute
|r25 the comen deliberacion and assente.
     8.   If any sende oute lettres of lewde affeccion,
     or of sclaunder of any persone, or erto make bylles



|p16    |r[5]


     or ry*mes |r[f.9a], inwarde or outewarde.
     9.   If any ley vyolente hande vpon her sovereyne, or
     spituosly smyte or wownde her or any suster, thof sche
     reyse no blode of them; or elles make any profer to
 |r5 smyte be sygne or token, leftyng vp her fest, stykke,
     staffe, stone, or any other wepen what ever it be; or
     els schofte, pusche, or sperne, any suster from her
     with armes or sholders, handes, or fete, violently, in
     wrekyng of her own wreth.
|r10 10.   If any do kylle, or mayme another.
     11.   If any fal openly into fleschly syn, kyndly or
     vnkyndly[.]
     12.   If any do open sacrilege or thefte.
     13.   If any in her madnes or drunke*nesse |r[f.9b], blaspheme
|r15 horrybly, god, or our lady, or any of hys sayntes.
     14.   If any be founde so moche vncorrigyble, that
     neyther she dredeth to do trespase, neyther fulfylleth
     e penaunce that is enioyned her for her defautes, or
     els openly refuseth to do her penaunce. Suche a per_sone
|r20 moste algates be conmytted to pryson, leste one
     skabbed schepe infecte al the flokke.
     Penaunce.
        What houre therfor of the day, that any is founde
     or take in any of the seyd defautes, or in any suche
|r25 other lyke, and dewe correccion or poneschmente, may
     not wele be deferryd tyl the houre of the chapter on
     the morne, lykly withoute hurte, for |r[f.9c] ofte sythes
     taryeng enduceth perell, the chapter belle schal be



|p17    |r[5]


     ronge, or els some other wyse, the couent schal be callyd
     togyder to the chapter. And by the commaundment of the
     president, sche schal put from her, her gyrdel and
     knyves, nedels and pynnes, cowle, mantel, crown and
 |r5 veyle, and remayne in her rewle cote, as it scheweth in
     the seuente chapter of is boke, leuynge al togyder at
     the presidentes fete. To whom the presydent schal say to
     her forthwith, in is wyse: For thys trespace, expressyng
     it, I enioyne owe the peyne of prysonemente. And anone
|r10 as the sentence is ouen, the gylty schal with sufficient
     garde assygned by the president, |r[f.9d] be led to the pryson,
     in the whiche sche shal abyde, tyl sche be very repentaun_te.
     Ande whylst sche is so led, the chapter schal be
     ended after the comen vse.
|r15 Other penaunce.
        Neuertheles yf so be that the gylty, of her own fre_dom
     meke herselfe, before alle, and trewly knowlage her
     defautes, behotynge amendes, so et, that sche haue not
     in custom to fal in suche defautes, sche schall be par_doned
|r20 of prisonmente, and fulfyl the penaunce that is
     sett and expressed in the seyd seuenthe chapter, for them
     that aren delyveryd oute of prison. Saue conspiratours,
     sclaunderers, mankyllers, violent smytyrs, incontynente
     lyuers or brekers of chastite, and apostata*es |r[f.10a], and
|r25 they that be vncorrigible, schal be excepte euermore,
     from any pardon of prisonmente.
        Moreouer, yf any suche be, that by the felynge and
     dome of the souereyne, and of the more and holer parte of
     the congregacion, may not be sufferyd in the seyd con



|p18    |r[5]


     gregacion, withoute grete perele of sowles or of bodyes,
     than schal suche be schette vp in pryson, or in some other
     stronge place. But wylful mankyllers, schal be put to
     perpetual prison.
 |r5    And sche that schal be prysoned, or is in pryson,
     schal be vnder the kepynge of suche, that kanne and may
     suerly kepe her, mynystrynge to her, as the souereyn byd_deth.



|p19    |r[6]


     |r[f.10b] Sexte chapter. Of apostates.
        She that after open apostasye, turneth home aene
     wylfully, schal be receyued in thys forme. Fyrst,
     sche schal come openly in the same habyte and clothyng
 |r5 that sche used in her apostasy, wheyther it wer seculer
     or religious. And at the dore of the chirche of the
     brethren clausure, than openyd, sche schal fal downe
     prostrate, before the confessour and hys brethren ther
     presente, the seculer peple seynge thys and beholdynge,
|r10 and so lyeng prostrate, sche schal aske leue to |r[f.10c]
     speke. And leve graunted, sche than knelynge ere,
     schal knowlage before alle, the gretenes and the enor_myte
     of her synne, concernynge only her apostasy, com_myttyng
     herself lowly to al reguler correccion therfore,
|r15 and be goddes grace amendemente of lyuyng and stable
     purpos of abydynge euerafter. Whiche doon, the con_fessour
     schal take her in withoute evyng of holy
     water, and so forthwith delyuer her to the abbes and
     couent, abydynge at ther dore of entre. Whom the
|r20 abbes than schal lede by the hande into ther comenynge
     hows, and there a3ene sche schal openly confesse to
     the abbes and couente, the synne of her apostasy, be_hotyn
     |r[f.10d] ge amendment, and perpetual stablenes of aby_dynge.
     And than forthwyth in e same place, by the
|r25 commaundment of the abbes, two serches schal eue her
     disciplyne, the couente in the mene tyme, distynctly
     and openly, quyer to quyer knelynge with the abbes,
     sayng thys psalme: Miserere mei deus, with Gloria
     patri, Kyryeleyson, Christeleyson, Kyryeleyson, Pater



|p20    |r[6]


     noster, Aue maria. And whyle pater noster and aue maria
     is in saynge, they that eue the disciplyne schal cese,
     begynnyng aene and contynuynge, wylst the abbes sayth
     thys preces folowyng [:] Et ne nos. Domine non secun_dum
 |r5 peccata nostra facias nobis. Domine exaudi oracio_nem
     meam. Oremus. |r[f.11a] Presta quesumus domine huic
     famule tue, dignum penitencie fructum peragere, vt que
     ab ecclesie tue integritate deuiauit apostatando, commis_sorum
     veniam consequendo, reddatur innoxa. Per christum
|r10 dominum nostrum. Amen. And al thys schall be seyd with
     so open voyce, that it may be herde both of sustres and
     brethren.
        Ande than the confessour syttyng at the seyd place,
     schal eue absolucion in thys wyse:  Within e comenynge
|r15 wyndowe, schall hange a cloth that may exclude hys syghte
     vtterly, and the syght of al that be with hym from the
     seyd persone and from al the sustres. And sche lyeng
     prostrate, and the two roddes with the which sche |r[f.11b] was
     dyscyplyned, lyeng upon her naked bakke, the confessour
|r20 schal say thus[:]
        Auctoritate dei patris omnipotentis et domini
     nostri ihesu christi, et cetera.
     And thys doon, the abbes schal eve her holy water, and
     a rewle cote, yf sche haue lefte it before, and than
|r25 the belle schal be ronge, and al schal go to chapter,
     where as sche schal take the sentence of prysonmente.
     And after a fewe dayes, sche schal be delyveryd oute
     therof, but yf so be that sche have fallen in apostasy
     before, or at none euydence of truste appere in her
|r30 of stablenes. Ande whan sche is thus come oute of
     pryson, e abbes schal assygne her a sadde maystres,



|p21    |r[6]


     with discrete iniunc*cions |r[f.11c] for a tyme, more or lasse,
     after the disposicion and behauynge of the persone, so
     late correctyd and so late delyveryd.
     Another penaunce.
 |r5    If any suche apostata be, that is broughte home
     with stronge hande, but ette wylfully submytteth her
     to reguler correccion, sche schal be receyued in the
     forme aboue expressyd, but her penaunce schal be more
     encresed.
|r10 Anoer penaunce.
        But any suche so broughte home, and wyl not
     submytte themself to reguler correccion, they schal
     be take in, openly be another dore, and go to pryson
     forthwyth, with other holsome straytnes, into tyme
|r15 that they repente them of al ther herte |r[f.11d] and sorowe
     for ther syn, and ofte tymes and with moche instaunce,
     offer themself mekly, to al maner of reguler correc_cion.
     And also make menes to other to pray for them,
     that they maye be admytted erto, and that to suche,
|r20 as they suppose schal be herde and spede. And than
     any suche schal be brought forth with her chaynes
     into the comenynge howse, there to be assoyled of
     her apostasy, after the forme before expressyd, in
     thys same chapter. Whiche doon, sche schal be had to
|r25 prison aene, ther to be ponesched and tretyd in the
     maner aboue seyde, with some encrese after the discre_cion
     of the souereyne and of the quantite |r[f.12a] of her



|p22    |r[6]


     trespase.
     Another penaunce.
     Whan the apostasy is preuy and not open, sche schal
     be take in prevyly by some other dore, and be ponesched
 |r5 and entretyd, after the forme before expressed.


     Seuenth chapter. Of prysoners and of ther delyueraunce.
        The reclused in pryson, schal not go thens, tylle
     sche repente of alle her herte. And in al thynges sche
     shal be treted after her demerytes, as the hody may
|r10 bere withoute notable hurte, hauyng no mantel |r[f.12b] nor
     cowle, veyle, nor crowne, tyl sche be delyuered from
     pryson. To whom, none schal speke nor go to nor eue,
     nor sende, nor any schal take aughte of her, but only
     by the precepte or lycence of the souereyne. Whoso
|r15 doeth the contrarye, schal bere the poneschemente,
     dewe for a more greuous defaute: And yf any brynge,
     or sende any instrumente, or any thynge els, by the
     whiche sche myght escape theueschly oute of pryson,
     she schal be put in pryson herselfe.
|r20    Euery day whylst any is in pryson, her prebende
     schal be broughte before the presidente, inmediatly
     after that the freytour is serued of be*comen |r[f.12c] pre_bende,
     but yf the abbes commaunde otherwyse, that the
     presidente after her discrecion make it more or lasse,
|r25 or els sende it forthe as it is.



|p23    |r[7]


     How prisoners schal be visitte.
        The sovereyne goeth neuer to any that is in pry_sone,
     but in tyme of grete nede. But other sustres, of
     the eldest, rypest, and saddest of the religion, be
 |r5 licence of the sovereyne, two or thre togyder, nowe
     these, now ei, owe of pyte and compassion, amonge to
     visitte suche prysoners, that they be not ouercome with
     to grete heuynes. Examynyng and preuyng ther inwarde
     labours, and enducynge them as nede re*quyreth |r[f.12d], to
|r10 be veray repentaunte, and that they take not to
     heuyly, the rodde of dewe correccion, syth it is a
     very token, of the grete mercy of god, whan he spareth
     not synners in thys lyfe. And thus and better as it
     falleth to ther mendes for the tyme, they owe to com_forte
|r15 hem with benygne and holsom wordes. If so be,
     that none suche sustres offer themselfe to suche visi_tacion,
     than schal the souereyne styrre suche, nowe
     these, nowe them, to execute suche werkes of pyte.
        And thof so be at such prysoners may be confessyd
|r20 of ther synnes leste they forete hem, et they schal
     not receyue sacramental abso*lucion |r[f.13a], like as they
     schal not receyve e sacramente, nor holy brede, nor
     holy water, nor any suche other sacramentales withoute
     special licence of the general confessour, because
|r25 they scholde the more attendably, study and werke the
     more spedyly, aboute tho ynges, that myghte cause and
     haste ther delyueraunce, but yf so be that ther pry_sonmente
     be perpetual. For in suche case, they may be
     as ofte assoyled sacramentaly, as they be confessyd.
|r30 Saue they shal not be comened but at the feste of



|p24    |r[7]


     ester, and in the artykle of dethe. And whan they be
     comened they schal come oute of pryson, as for at
     day, and at euen, |r[f.13b] go or be brought to pryson aene.
        Suche as falle into grete evydente sekenes,
 |r5 schal be broughte into the fermery, there for to be
     treted charitably, as the sekenes requyreth, and also
     in case of vttermest nede, to receyue al nedeful sacra_mentes.
     But yf ei rekeuer, they schal go aene to
     pryson and ther performe the resydewe of ther reguler
|r10 penaunce.
     Of delyueraunce oute of pryson.
        Whan sufficiente prefe is had by be general con_fessour,
     or by her kepers, or by them at visitt any
     suche, at any of hem ha very contricion and repen_taunce
|r15 of her transgression, and is in ful wyl to
     amende, and neuer aftyr by |r[f.13c] our lordes grace to fal
     aene into any suche defaute, thys ought to be noty_fyed
     to the souereyn. Whiche gretly reioysyng therof,
     and meuyd to mercy and pyte, schal lymytt a conuenient
|r20 day and tyme, for the delyueraunce of suche a suster.
     And the seyd day come, one of her kepers schal brynge
     her forthe into the chapter, havyng in eyther hande a
     rodde, and in her entre sche schal enclyne to e
     mageste: Ande whan sche cometh nygh to the presydent,
|r25 sche schal enclyne aene, leyng downe the rodde, that
     sche hath in her ryght hande, vpon the lefte syde of
     the presidente, and that |r[f.13d] other rodde vpon the ryght
     syde of e president, fallyng downe prostrate forthwith,
     and askyng leue to speke as al other be wonte. And



|p25    |r[7]


     whan sche hathe leue to speke, she ther knelynge schal
     knowlage her defautes openly, and committe herself to
     al reguler correccion, promyttynge be the mercy of
     god to amende her maners. And than forthwith at the
 |r5 commaundmente of the president, sche schal make her
     redy to disciplyne. Whiche two serches or two other
     sustres assygned by the presidente schal eue, not
     scharply but in a mene, the presydent and the couente
     knelyng and saynge distinctly in the me*ne |r[f.14a] whyle,
|r10 quyer to quyer thys psalme: Miserere mei deus  with
     Gloria patri, Kyrieleyson, Christeleyson, Kyrieleyson.
     And whilst the Pater noster and Aue maria is in saynge,
     they that eue the disciplyne schal cese, begynnyng
     aene and contynewyng, whilst the president sayth thys
|r15 preces folowynge, whiche is to be seyd with so open
     voyce that it may be herde of alle: Et ne nos. Domine
     non secundum peccata nostra facias nobis. Domine exaudi
     oracionem meam. Oremus. Deus cui proprium est misereri
     semper et parcere, suscipe deprecacionem nostram, et
|r20 hanc famulam tuam quam delictorum cathena constringit,
     miseracio tue pietatis absol*uat |r[f.14b]. Per christum
     dominum nostrum, Amen[.]
        Thys doon, sche schal clothe herselfe aene, with
     the helpe of them that ave the disciplyne, and than
|r25 sche schal lye downe prostrate aene before the pre_sydente .
     To whom the presidente schal say thus: What
     say e. And she lyenge prostrate, schal answer thus:
     I aske the mercy of god and owres, that I may be
     delyueryd fro my bondes of pryson. The presidente
|r30 schal say: Ryse vp. And whan sche is rysen, the



|p26    |r[7]


     president schal declare to her, knelyng before her,
     the gretenes of her trespase, and the payne that she
     hath deseruyd therby, sayng thus in sentence:
     Doughter the gretenes and gre*uousnes |r[f.14c] of so grete
 |r5 a defaute, asketh at e scholde haue byde lenger in
     prysone. Neuertheles, what for our repentaunce,
     and for the pyte that I haue of ow, what for the
     manyfolde and charitable besechynges of oure sustres,
     ouercomen, I muste nedes schew some mercy to ow. I
|r10 assoyle owe from the bonde of pryson. And whan sche
     hereth thys, anone sche schal fal downe prostrate at
     the fete of the president, offeryng herselfe to kesse
     them. But e presidente in no wyse schal suffer that,
     but rather put downe her ryght hande that sche may
|r15 kesse it. And than there knelynge, sche schal thanke
     al the sustres |r[f.14d] than beyng in the chapter, begynnyng
     fyrst at the ryghte syde, and after at e lefte.
        Thys doon, the presidente schal enioyne to her
     the penaunce of a more greuous defaute for a tyme,
|r20 that is to say, eghte dayes at leste, of the whiche
     one schal be in brede and water, on the flore in the
     myddes of the freytoure. Whiche day, at euery con_uentual
     entrynge into the chirche and comynge oute
     from dyvyne seruyse, or at the leste at grace, after
|r25 mete and suppere, sche schal lye prostratt at the
     chirche dore, sayng in a lowe voyce mornyngly to the
     sustres that come in or oute, ofte rehersyng the
     same, thus: Goode sustres pray for me; goode sustres |r[f.15a]
     pray for me. Ande eche suster, outetake whan they
|r30 enter in with graces, schall answer thus aene in



|p27    |r[7]


     lyke voyce thof it be silence tyme: Almyghty god haue
     mercy vpon ow. And eche day that sche taketh disci_plyne
     sche schal fal downe prostrat before the presi_dente,
     askynge some relese of her penaunce. And the
 |r5 president schal remitte now a parte and an a parte
     after her discrecion, but no grete inge in e be_gynnyng,
     nor any tyme al, outake at ende, or in
     case of nede ineuitable; for all suche thynges ar
     to be doon, be conuenient processe. And as ofte as
|r10 any is relesed of any thynge, sche schal fal downe
     prostrat and thanke |r[f.15b] the president and al the con_gregacion
     as it is seyd before.
        But as touchyng to them, that be openly knowen
     for acursed, ther schal no penaunce be enioyned hem,
|r15 tyl they be fyrst assoyled of the general confessour
     after the forme of holy chirche, expressed in the
     sexte chapter.



|p28    |r[8]


     Eghte chapter. Of the presidente.
        By thys name Presidente, is vnderstonde every per_sone,
     that amonge the couente gaderyd togyder in any
     conuentual acte, hath there the rewle |r[f.15c] of the religion,
 |r5 atte leste for that ceson. For they that be so
     gadered, be neuer withoute a presidente. The souereyne
     is president in euery place. And sche absente, the
     priores is presidente. Sche absente, the eldeste
     serche. Al these thre absente, the secunde serche,
|r10 and so descendynge by al the serches. Whiche al ab_sente,
     the eldest suster of hem there present, is
     presidente.
        The presidente who ever it be, in e absence of
     the souereyne schal do that the sovereyn scholde do
|r15 yf sche wer there presente, excepte in cases specially
     and only reserued to the souereyne.
        Ande who that ever be presidente, be it so |r[f.15d] ver_eyne
     or other, in hir iugementes aboute em at trespas
     and fal into defautes, she oweth to have grete besynes
|r20 and warnes, knowyng wele, that the physicion is not
     nedeful to them at be hole, but to them that be seke
     and euell at ese. Wherfor sche oweth to consyder
     discretly, and to ponder wyseiy, the gretenes of the
     trespas, withal the circumstaunces therof, and also
|r25 the dispocions of the persones that do it, and there
     after to enioyne, the penaunce, taxed in the secunde,
     thryd, fourth, and fyfte chaptres of these addicions,
     whiche penaunce in case sche may make more or lasse
     after her discrecion. But in nowyse sche oweth to
|r30 leue |r[f.16a] behynde the doctryne of the holy apostle saynte



|p29    |r[8]


     paule, whiche techeth al souereynes how they schal
     behaue them to ther subiectes saynge thus: Repreue
     scharply; Beseche hertly; Blame wrothly.
     i. She repreveth trespasers scharply, whan sche
 |r5 before other persones, eueth monicion to suche as
     be vnrestful, or kepe not ther religion, or be neg_4
     lygent in many thynges, chargynge them in al wyse
     that they amende hemself.
     ii. Sche besecheth hertly, whan sche goodly exhor_teth
|r10 them that of infyrmyte fal and synne, that they
     haue more warnes to kepe themselfe from suche falles,
     and to make them stronge, at they he not so lyght |r[f.16b]
     to falle. Or els, whan sche prayeth them at be
     obediente, mylde, and paciente, to perseuer and con_tynewe,
|r15 and to encrese therin.
     iii. But sche blameth wrothly, whan sche wrothely
     repreueth, or moderatly chydeth them that synne and
     trespas of purpose and of certayne malice, or of
     contempte, or of longe roted custom.
|r20    Neuertheles al thys is to be done mesurably
     and somwhat in the spirit of softenes, leste that
     the gylty thorough to moche suche blamynge, be so
     gretly chaufed and trobled, that sche wyl not gladly
     admytte the holsom penaunce that is enioyned her for
|r25 her defautes.
        Wherfor the porte of the presidente, is to be
     manerly, meke, |r[f.16c] and sadde, and the sounde of her
     voyce, somwhat lowe. Ande sche oweth to be vnyver



|p30    |r[8]


     sal to al and not parcial; and in as moche as in her
     is, sche oweth to wynne al to god. And thof so be some
     tyme, dewe correccion is to be differryd into another
     tyme, for the grete trouble of her that deserueth
 |r5 scharply to be blamed, et the seyd correccion, is
     neuer to be buryed, and that for two causes.
        One cause is, for yf so be that the gylty wyl not
     amende herselfe, sche is to be arted and constreyned
     therto by peynes, into tyme sche cese to synne. For
|r10 holy scripture sayth: a fole is neuer chastysed by
     wordes. And therfor it is ne*cessary |r[f.16d] that suche be
     chastysed by peynes to the delyueraunce of ther sowles.
        Another cause is, for thof so be the gylty, be
     vncorrigible, et by dewe poneschmente, it is prouyded
|r15 for the comen wele. For whan the couente seeth that
     the order of iustice is kepte, they owe not to be the
     werse by the euel ensample of any suche; but rather
     they owe to refreyne themselfe, and be the more aferde
     for to do evell.
|r20    The president hath nede to be wyse, ware, and
     paciente, that in the execucion of reguler correccion
     and disciplyne, sche maye reduce the infecte schepe
     and the mysrewled into reguler and holy conuersacion,
     and hurte not them, that |r[f.17a] be hole and wele rewled.
|r25    The sovereyn only, eueth sentence and iugemente,
     both in more greuous and moste greuous defautes, but



|p31    |r[8]


     yf sche committe openly before witnes, that power to
     anoer presidente. So that another presidente than
     the souereyne, yf suche defautes come before her,
     sche oweth to reserue em to the dome of the souer_eyne.
 |r5 Withoute whos counsel and precepte, knowen
     also to some other sustres sche schal not determyn any
     grete thynge, nor sette any newe thynge; but al suche
     matyrs sche schal assigne to the dome of the souereyn.
     Nor sche schal in any place take the souereynes sete,
|r10 but in the chapter, and at |r[f.17b] the collacion, and in the
     freytour, sche shal kepe her own syde, syttynge at the
     ende of the same benche vpon the whiche the sovereyne
     hath her sete. But in the quyer sche schal kepe her
     owne stalle, as sche scholde do yf sche wer not presi_dente;
|r15 outake at graces in the absence of the abbes.
     For an sche schal stonde aboue alle in her own syde,
     both in the freytour and in the chirche, and so sche
     schal go to the chirche and come aene to waschynge of
     handes, thof sche be the ongeste of alle the order.
|r20 Of admyttyng of brothren and sustres of the chapter.
        Any man or woman, mekly, deuoutly with instaunce,
     and in the wey of |r[f.17c] charite, askynge to be admytted and
     receyued, to be a brother or suster of our chapter,
     graunte asked and had ones for euer, of the hole con_gregacion
|r25 of sustres and brethren in special or in
     general, the abbes beyng at the grate, may say alone
     or with any there presente is psalme:  Deus misere



|p32    |r[8]


     atur nostri, or els is psalme: Ad te leuaui, with
     Gloria patri, Kyrieleyson, Christeleyson, Kyrieleyson,
     Pater noster, Aue maria Et ne nos, Ostende nobis,
     Oremus pro fratribus et sororibus nostris, Domine
     exaudi, Oremus.
        Acciones nostras quesumus domine aspirando pre_ueni,
     et adiuuando prosequere, vt cuncta nostra oracio
     et operacio, a te semper incipiat, et per te cepta |r[f.17d]
     finiatur. Per christum dominum nostrum. Amen. This
|r10 doon, sche may exorte hem thus yf sche thynke it ex_pedient,
     or oer wyse lyke:
     In the name of our lorde ihesu criste, and of hys
     blissed moder our lady saynt marye, ande of our holy
     moder saynte birgitte, and of al sayntes, and in the
|r15 name of al the hole congregacion of sustres and breth_ren,
     and in myne owen name, consideryng the loue that
     e haue to vs and to our order, and feruente deuocion,
     by the whiche e desire the suffrages of our congre_gacion,
     I admytte and receyue ow to be partener of
|r20 al spiritual subsidies of oure monastery. That is to
     say, of prayers, fastynges, disciplynes, and of al
     other gode de*des |r[f.18a], whiche it pleseth our lorde ihesu
     of hys grace and mercy to werke by vs and our suc_cessours  .
     Grauntyng ow as ferforth as we may with
|r25 hys plesure, in lyfe and in deth, ful and perpetual
     participation of al the premysses. Addynge to more
     ouer, at whan any knowlage of our decese cometh to
     vs or to our successours, the same suffrages schal
     be done for owe, that from the begynnyng of our
|r30 religion haue be wonte to be done for brethren and



|p33    |r[8]


     sustres of our chapter. Contynueth therfore in our
     goode wyl to vs warde, and whan e perceyue that any
     hurte is lykly to come to our monastery, yf e may,
     lette it. Or els do vs to wyte, that |r[f.18b] we may eschewe
 |r5 our harmes, and haue cause to loue ow and pray for
     owe the more hertly.
     Or els thus:
        In the name of our lord ihesu criste and of hys
     moste blissed moder, our lady saynt mary, I admitte
|r10 ow to be partener of al spiritual subsidyes of thys
     monastery. In nomine patris et filii et spiritus
     sancti. Amen.
        Ande afterwarde the names of suche persons arn
     to be sette in the boke of the fraternite, whiche is
|r15 named Codex catitatis. And yf they of er own mocion
     and fre wyl, do any benefete of notable substaunce
     to the monastery, is oweth to be wryten with ther
     names, and they schal be rekened among the bene_factours  .
 
|r20    Oure own carnal faders |r[f.18c] and moders, brethren
     and sustres, and other of our nygh kynrede, be breth_ren
     and sustres by our entres into thys religion, and
     schal haue the same suffrages that other haue, thof
     they neuer aske by themselfe, for to be of our frater_nite.
|r25 



|p34    |r[9]


     Nyenth chapter. Of the dede, how they shal be buryed.
        Whan any suster is dede, the dede body schal be
     leyde bare, al possible honeste saued and kepte, vpon
     a bare borde, ordeyned therfor, couered with lede yf
 |r5 nede be. And there sche schal be wasche with |r[f.18d] warme
     water by em that have the cure of the fermery, and
     by other sad persones, suche as the souereyne wyl
     aasygne therto.
        Whiche done, they schal clothe the body with
|r10 stamen, cowle, and mantel, wymple, veyle, and crowne,
     withoute rewle cote, but with hosen and schone tanned,
     and with a gyrdel, whiche al schal be of the vileste
     gere, and in al these, excepte the mantel, sche shal
     be buryed.
|r15    After at the body is thus arayed, it schal be
     leyed vpon the bere, and couered with a cheste, made
     in maner of a wyde latyce, that the body may be seen,
     and so it schal be brought in to the sustres quyer,
     chapter, cloyster, or into some other more conueniente
|r20 |r[f.19a] place.
        And the body schal neuer be withoute two sustres
     at leste, prayeng for the sowle, saynge ther psauter,
     or dirige, or any other prayers, tyl it be had to
     chirche; nor it schal be lefte alone, at any tyme,
|r25 tyl it be buryed.
        What tyme the body schal be had to chirche, or
     to sepulture, that is reserued, to the discrecion of



|p35    |r[9]


     the confessour and hys brethren, counsel had of the
     abbes in thys party, as for the sustres. Before that
     the coorse be buryed schal be seyde a masse of requiem,
     for the soule, but yf it be so corrupte, at it may mot
 |r5 so longe be kepte2 aboue erthe, withoute infeccion of
     other.
        Other obseruances about the dede, be sette in the
     |r[f.19b] fyftenth, seuententh, and two and twenty chaptres of
     our sauiours rewle.
|r10 Of suffrages to be seyd for the dede.
        Neuertheles, whan any suster or broer is passed,
     eche day, thretty dayes togyder, at graces after mete
     and supper, schal be seyd for them, thys orison   Deus
     cui proprium, the lesse, before, Absolue quesumus do_mine.
|r15 And euery suster, eche of tho thritty dayes, in
     our lady masse tyme, schal say thre pater nostres and
     thre aues. One, whilste the preste saythe the fyrst
     collectes of the seyd masse, another before the pre_face,
     and be thryd, whyle he sayth the laste collectes.
|r20 Or els yf they wylle, it schal be leful to em to say
     the seyd suffrages, any day within the |r[f.19c] monthe day,
     whiche draweth to an hundereth pater nostres and aues
     save tenne.
        Also besyde this, eche suster schal say for euery
|r25 suster and brother so passed, dauid psauter thryes,
     and sex dirigeys, thre in the quyer, and thre withoute;



|p36    |r[9]


     and ther obites schal be red euery ere, as they falle
     in the martilage. Moreouer yf any dye before the fyrst
     masse in the mornynge, the same day schal begynne the
     rekenynge, of the fyrst day, of the seyd thritty dayes.
 |r5 If they passe after the fyrste masse, the rekenynge
     schal begynne on the morne folowynge, but the xxxti day
     schal euer kepe hys course.
        Whan therfore the body of any |r[f.19d] suster schal be
     had to chirche, ther bel shal be ronge, and al schal
|r10 stonde in ther cloyster procession wyse, the abbes and
     eldeste sustres nexte the bere. And so they schal
     folowe the corse to the chirche, the brethren syngynge,
     and they devoutly prayenge for the sowle.
     Of dirige for a corse presente.
|r15    Before dirige schal be lyght two tapers at leste
     in the sustres quyer, to bren into the begynnynge of
     commendacions or to e ende. And while the brethren
     synge ther dirige, the sustres, syde for syde, distinct_ly
     and deuoutly, schal say the same dirige withoute
|r20 note, with commendacions. In the which dirige for
     euery corse presente, |r[f.20a] the abbes schal execute the
     office, sayng the orisons, and redynge the laste les_son  .
     But other lessons shal be red of other sustres,
     warned and assygned therto by the chauntres; ester
|r25 tyme and other, and on the morne, al the houres schal
     be seyd before hygh masse of requiem.
     Of differrynge of diriges.
        If any corse presente, fal on cristemas eues eue,
     or from thens into e vtas of saynte steuen, or from
|r30 saturday in passion wyke, into the monday, after the



|p37    |r[9]


     vtas of ester, or els from the fryday before wit sonday,
     into the morne after trinite sonday, or any other tyme
     like, an |r[f.20b] the solempne dirige schal be differryd
     into suche a tyme, where as it may be moste conuenient_ly
 |r5 had with note, after the disposicion of e general
     confessour, and the same tyme, e sustres schal haue
     ther fyrst dirige.
        Saue than, two sustres atte leste, assygned by
     the abbes, schal say dirige togyder by the corse, yf
|r10 it be a suster, or in the sustres quyer yf it be a
     brother, tofore the corse be buryed yf it may be.
        Moreouer it is to be knowen, that how be it, the
     fyrst dirige may be differred as it is seyd before;
     et the xxxti day, and eres day schal neuer be dif_ferred,
|r15 but yf the more soden case fall[.]
        Neuertheles they may |r[f.20c] for double festes, and for
     many other causes resonable contingent, be ryght wele
     and conueniently anteferryd, after the discrecion of
     the general confessour.
|r20    In al diriges therfor, for any corse presente,
     and for the monthe day, and ere day of buschops,
     kynges, lordes, abbesses, general confessours and
     suche other, the abbes schal execute the dirige, on
     her own syde. But al other diriges, schal be exe_cuted
|r25 by the ebdomadaryes of the same wyke.
        So that the sustres in sayng of any diriges,
     cotidian, and other, be bounde by ther own ordinal,
     to say them after the vse of ther cathedral chirche.
     Wherfor it is expediente to them to take coun*sel |r[f.20d]



|p38    |r[9]


     amonge of there brethren prestys, and folowe the forme
     somdele, expressed in the foure and fourty chapter of
     thys boke.



|p39    |r[10]


     Tenthe chapter. Of the visitacion of the buschoppe.
        The buschop visiteth eche thre ere yf he wyll,
     suche tyme as he visiteth hys diocese. But he schal
     neuer visitte here, but in hys proper persone, hauynge
 |r5 with hym two, or thre sad and honest persones. Of the
     whiche, one schal be a religious manne of the order of
     benett or bernarde, chosen by the abbes and gene*ral |r[f.21a]
     confessour, with the counsel of sexe the elder and
     holer of eyther party separatly of sustres and brethe_ren,
|r10 yf they thynke it expedient. But no lay man nor
     wedded man schal euer entre with the buschop in hys
     visitacion, but yf he be callyd by the seyd sustres
     and brethres consente togyder with the buschop, for
     some special cause, which may not be discussed utter_ly,
|r15 withoute e counsel of suche a man.
        Whan therfor the buschop schal visitte, he moste
     sende before, hys lettres of citacion, as the maner
     and custom is. Ande whan he cometh to visitte, he
     schal be receyued worchipfully with ryngynge of belles
|r20 and procession. |r[f.21b]
        And whan the oryson is seyd ouer hym at hygh
     auter, the blessyng oven, and be sermon ended, yf
     er be any, he schal go to the sustres dore be be
     gydyng of the general confessour. Whiche dore
|r25 opened, the abbes with the couente schal receyue hym
     reuerently, goyny processionally before hym withoute
     songe or redyng into ther chapeter hows. Whom the
     buschop with hys clerkes schal folowe, and whan he
     cometh into the chapter, ei schal knele to hym, as
|r30 he goeth-before them[.]  And whan he hath take hys



|p40    [10]


     sete, he shal make the abbes to sytte on hys ryghte
     hande and commaunde al other to sytte, hys klerkes
     syttyng before hym on a tapette. |r[f.21c]
        Thys done, the buschop schal say: Benedicite
 |r5 and the couente schal answer: Dominus.
        Than he schal publisch the cause of hys comynge
     as the custom is, and after that he schal purpose vnto
     them thre thynges to be kepte of alle.
        Fyrste, that none depose to hym, or to any that
|r10 cometh with hym, any thynge at is corrected to fore
     and amended.
        Secunde, that none say any greuous thyng of the
     abbes or confessour, suster or brother, wherof they
     haue not charitably be warned tofore, nor that they
|r15 depose aughte or accuse any, but only of suche
     thynges that have be done syth the laste visitacion. |r[f.21d]
        Thridde, that none of wikkednes or of evel wyll,
     differre any thynge, whiche they knowe to be amended,
     and reserue it to the comynge of the visitour, to the
|r20 more sclaunder of the doers. For al defautes arn to
     be proclamed and corrected in dewe tyme as they falle.
     Wherfor they that do the contrary, schal be greuosly
     corrected by the buschop, that al other be afferd to
     do so at any tyme.
|r25    After this the buschop schal say in thys wyse to
     them: We commaunde ow in the vertu of holy obedience,
     that e telle vs trouthe, of al tho thynges that we
     haue to examen and aske owe of.
     These be the articles |r[f.22a] that the buschop schal examen
|r30 of in hys visitacion yf he wyll.



|p41    |r[10]


     Firste, yf the reguler nowmbre of sustres and brethren
     be complete. And yf it be not, what is the cause
     therof.
     2.   Also yf dyuyne seruyse be dewly done after the
 |r5 religion and deuoutly; and yf the sustres that be not
     seke, here dayly her masse.
     3.   If it be ronge in dewe and competente tyme to the
     seyd seruyse, and yf al come therto that may.
     4.   If ther be hadde sufficient bokes to do dyuyne
|r10 seruise with[.]
     5.   If the chirche be serued with lyghtes and honeste
     ornamentes, as the religion wylle.
     6.   If the sacramentes be dewly and chari*tably |r[f.22b]
     mynystred to the seke and hole that deuoutly aske hem.
|r15 7.   If the sustres be comenyd as the rewle wylle and
     the constitucions of e order.
     8.   If the ere day of the founders, and other diriges
     for sustres and brethren decesed, be dewly obserued
     whan they falle.
|r20 9.   If reguler fastes and abstinences, silence, and
     other obseruaunces of the order be dewly kepte in tymes
     and places ordeyned therto.
     10.   How sustres be occupyed, whan they be not atte
     dyuyne seruyse, nor at other conuentualle obseruances.
|r25 11.   If ther be any discorde or contraversy betwene
     the sustres amonge themself, or els betwene |r[f.22c] the
     sustres and breren and how and of whom it rose, and
     by whom it is noresched.
     12.   If any be diffamed of incontinence, or of properte,
|r30 or of conspiracy aens the souereynes, or serches, or



|p42    |r[10]


     aenste any suster or brother.
     13. If any diffame other of any notable defaute, that
     they kan not preue.
     14. If any publicacion be made to any of the seculers,
 |r5 of the preuytees of e chapter, or of the monasterye,
     and by whom.
     15. If any be, that have been in apostasy, and how
     they were receyued whan they came aene.
     16. If ther be a pryson or prysones for suche as de_serue
|r10 it.
     17. If any detracte the abbes or confes*sour |r[f.22d], or
     any suster or brother, to any outewarde persone.
     18. If ther be an inuentory or register of the bokes
     of the library, and how they, and other bokes of study
|r15 be kepte and repayred.
     19. If the chapter be dewly holde after the rewle,
     and other tymes whan nede is, and reguler correccions
     had therin. Or yf any be founde rebelle and inobedient
     to be abbes or to e general confessour, or refuse to
|r20 take correccions, and how suche be punesched.
     20. If the abbes and confessour, and al oer presi_dentes
     and serches, trete religiously, and charitably
     her susteres and brethren, as they owe to do.
     21. If the abbes or confessour be defa*med |r[f.23a] of any
|r25 cryme, or of dilapidacion of the godes of the
     monastery, aenste the prohibicion of e pope, in the
     xiite article of the bulle.



|p43    |r[10]


     22. If the abbes make alienacion of vnmouable goodes,
     or of any other thynges aens the popes prohibicion.
     23. If al reguler clothynge, both to the bed and
     body, and al oer necessaryes, be dewly mynystred by
 |r5 the abbes or by her officers, to the brethren and
     sustres, after ther nede, as the pope hath ordeyned.
     24. If the sustres and brethren be serued charitably,
     and with a goode wyll, in dewe and conuenient tymes,
     of ther necessaryes.
|r10 25. How the munymentes of the mo*nastery |r[f.23b] and the
     comen seeles be kepte, and by whome, or yf any selynge
     be made with any comen seele, withoute certayne know_lage
     and assente of the couente, or of the more holer
     parte of sustres and brethren as the pope hath ordeyned.
|r15 26. How the fermery is kepte, and howe the seke be
     entreted, and yf they be serued competently withoute
     grudgynge[.]
     27. If dewe distribucion of the releues and broken
     mete, be made to the poer in dewe tyme.
|r20 28. If that after sufficient endowment and byldyng of
     the chirche and monastery, e necessary expenses of the
     ere presente and of the ere nexte to come rekenedde,
     |r[f.23c] al that remayneth ouer, be deled euery ere to the
     pooere as the rewle wyll.
|r25    The seyd examynacion made, the buschop schal pro_cede
     to the acte of the visitacion, after the power
     ouen to hym by the rewle and by the pope.



|p44    |r[10]


        And it is to be knowen that in thre maner wyses,
     he may procede in hys visitacion. That is to say:
     By wey of accusacion, by wey of denunciacion, and by
     wey of inquisicion.
 |r5    The accuser schal neuer be herde, but yf sche
     fyrst bynde herselfe to the same payne, yf sche fayle
     in her prefe, that sche, whom sche accuseth scholde
     haue, yf sche were founde gylty. Ande these |r[f.23d] ar to
     be reiecte and not to be admytted to accuse other.
|r10 That is to say, stelers of holy chirche godes, theves,
     robbers, manquellers, forsworn, they that fal to in_ceste,
     cursed, wode, madde, despisers of the chirche,
     noysed of cryme, oute of feyth and of goode name and
     fame, enmyes, scismatykes, heretykes, symonyers,
|r15 traytours, hurtyrs of the kynges coyne, and suche
     other.
        Afore denunciacion, ther oughte euermore to go
     charitable warnynge. For denunciacion intendeth and
     werketh for correccion. And therfor yf charitable
|r20 admonicion go not tofore, the denouncer is not to be
     herde, but to be repulsed. And they that be ou*te |r[f.24a]
     of gode name and fame, and be enmyes, be also to be
     reiecte from denunciacion.
        But as to inquisicion, ther ought to precede a
|r25 comen clamour of grete mysrewle, not ones but ofte,
     and thys of gode persones and sadde. And than in
     suche case, he schal enquyre, of whom the seyd cla_mour
     and infamye sprange firste.
        Neuertheles, yf so be, that it be answered of al
|r30 to the buschop, that al thynges be wele, he oweth to



|p45    |r[10]


     ioy therof gretly and to thanke god, and so to
     blysse them al and goo oute as he came in. If ther
     answer be other wyse, he schall procede forth in hys
     acte of visitacion, herynge attentyfly, what is seyd
 |r5 to hym |r[f.24b] or to any of hys clerkes.
     Of the buschops iniunccions and correccions after his
     visitacion[.]
        And whan alle be herde that wyl come, he schal
     schewe and publysche suche defautes as be to be cor_rected,
|r10 in suche wyse as he semeth beste. But e
     correccions, penaunces, and peynes, that be to be
     sette and enioyned to the trespasers, he schal com_mitte
     the execucion therof to the abbes or to the
     sadder parte of the sustres, as the pope hath ordeyned.
|r15 Wyche ordinauncis be to be red in alle wyse amonge
     the susters in the day tofore the byschopes visitacion
     as it standeth in the xi chapter of these addicions.
        So than al thynges ryghtly done after e rewle,
     priuileges, and |r[f.24c] ordynaunces of the pope, the
|r20 buschoppe schal enioyne the abbes, in the vertu of
     holy obedience, that sche haue none of her sustres in
     hate, nor pursewe them, nor the lasse charitably trete
     hem, for any thynge they haue deposed or seyd aens
     her in the visitacion. And also he schal enioyne the
|r25 sustres in lyke wyse, that they loue not the abbes
     the lasse, nor withdrawe from her dewe obedience and



|p46    |r[10]


     reuerence in anythynge, and that no suster repreue
     other, or reuenge her vpon other, or greue or manesch
     other, for anythynge that was seyd or deposed in the
     visitacion.
 |r5    If any suche matyrs be or falle, that may not
     sone |r[f.24d] be determyned and fynysched than, they schal be
     dyfferred and fynysched another tyme, at the grates
     withoute, or els within, yf the mater requyre it. So
     that the buschop abyde not at the monastery ouer thre
|r10 dayes.



|p47    |r[11]


     Enleuenth chapter. For what cases the buschop, or
     any other persone, schal entre into the monastery.
        Martinus episcopus, seruus seruorum dei, et cetera.
        For a perpetual memory, we wylle and commaunde,
 |r5 that e buschops of the diocyses, in whos citees or|r[f.25a]
     diocyses, suche maner of monasteryes and places be
     sette, or in tyme to come may be sette and bylded in
     the reme of ynglande, that they do in al wyse ther or_dynary
     offices, after the power, that the rewle and con_stitucions,
|r10 of the same order graunteth hem. By the
     which rewle and constitucions it is ordeyned and dis_posed,
     that the buschops of the same diocyses schal
     be faders and iuges in al cases and causes, that toche
     the sustres or brethren, and also visitours and proc_tours
|r15 of the seyd monasteryes, to that ende at the
     rewle be kepte.
        Neuertheles we wyll that the seyd buschops in
     nowyse, eue oute any maner of sentence of cursynge,
     suspension, or interdiccion, |r[f.25b] general or special,
|r20 vpon any persones of the seyd monasteryes, withoute
     commission and special commaundmente of our see. Nor
     that they aske any costes of them, nor vexe em vn_dewly,
     nor troble them in any wyse vnlefully, vnder
     payne of cursynge, yf they be warned to cese and wyl
|r25 not. Whiche buschops et, by oure sovereyne auctorite,
     we straytly bydde, and commaunde, that they se the
     rewle and statutes be kepte of the order, inuiolably
     in euery parte, as it is seyd before.



|p48    |r[11]


        And also we ordeyne, that whan ei visytte only
     personally, it schal be leful to them for to entre into
     the monastery, with other two or re sadde men and
     honeste, and so to exercyse er |r[f.25c] office of visitacion,
 |r5 as wele amonge sustres as brethren, in dewe maner and
     in dewe place, after the lawe and dewe exigence of the
     rewle. To whom also it be lefulle in dowty cases of
     religion, to aske counsell of wele named and famed per_sons,
     professed monkes of the order of saynte benett,
|r10 or of saynt bernarde, and so for to visitte. And that
     only from thre ere to thre ere, but yf he be klepyd
     afore the thridde ere, for an euident and profitable
     necessary cause, of the abbes with the sadder party of
     the sustres, or of the sadder party of the sustres,
|r15 withoute the abbes. Or els of the general confessour,
     with e sadder party of the |r[f.25d] brethren, or of the sad_der
     party of the brethren, withoute the confessour.
     For than be it leful to hym, to come and visitte in the
     maner aforeseyde.
|r20    Or els yf it happe as god forbede it, that suche
     trespases, and defautes, soo encrese in the monastery,
     that it breke oute, into e grete sclaunder, and in_famy
     of the monastery, and the abbes and general con_fessour
     considerynge the defautes, dissymule feynyngly
|r25 for to correcte hem, be it in hemselfe or in any oer,
     than be it leful to the foreseyd buschops of the dio_cyses,
     thof they be not kleped afore the thryd ere,
     kepyng the condicions of the rewle, as for al other
     thyn*ges |r[f.26a], for to visitte, and with dewe destresse to
|r30 correcte that owe to be corrected and reformed, as



|p49    |r[11]


     ought as it nedeth, in suche and other like cases, as
     it is rehersed tofore.
        Wyllyng neuertheles, that the seyd diocesanes, or
     any other by ther leue, or et in other wyse than it is
 |r5 rehersed, takyng vp on them the office of visitacion,
     owen, and ther to be bounden, for to committe the cor_reccions,
     penaunces, and paynes, enioyned by them, to
     hem, at haue so trespased in the monastery, to e
     abbes as for e sustres, and to the general confessour
|r10 as for e brethren, yf they maye profitably by em be
     executed. Or els than, to the sustres as for the
     sustres, and |r[f.26b] to the brethren as for the brethren, or
     to e sadder party of euery eyther, as it may be exe_cuted
     by them; so that in nowyse they schal committe
|r15 the execucion of suche correccions, sentences, and
     paynes, to any oer.
        And whan any buschop is kleped to visitte, he
     schal entyr and visitte that party only and no mo, of
     the which he was kleped.
|r20    Noon other schal entyr the clausure, but yf hys
     entre be very necessary, as phisicians, werkmen,
     labourers, and suche other. And whan ei entyr,
     they schal entyr with some outewarde prudente persone
     of the housolde yf nede be, outetake phisicians, that
|r25 the sustres be not greved, nor trobled by them.  |r[f.26c]
     And yf it may be, that they be seen of none, excepte
     of o sustres, that schall schew them suche inges,
     that moste be made or repayred, and of tho that
     schal receyue medycynes or mynyster any medycynes to
|r30 the seke. Ande namely they moste beware, that they



|p50    |r[11]


     be not in e gardyn, whiles werkemen or laboureres be
     there, thof they speke not to them; and thys for
     dyuers and preuy temptacions. But none of them that
     entreth in e clausure, in nowyse schal abyde within
 |r5 all nyghte, what case at euer happen.
        Also the buschop entreth, for evyng of holy
     orders to e breren, at schal be orderyd, and to
     halowe ther chirches, |r[f.26d] chircherdes, and chapelles,
     and for consecracions of abbesses, and makyng of pro_fessions,
|r10 or for any other ordynary acte to be done in
     e monastery only of a buschop.
     Of the consecracion and installacion of the abbesse.
        And as for the consecracion and instillacion of
     the abbes, in the day of her consecracion, all the
|r15 howres of sustres and brethren schal be ended before
     hygh masse.
        To the which masse, al the belles rongen, the
     buschop in hys pontifical araymente, schal conferme
     the abbes late chosen by hys lettres patent, at the
|r20 grate of her eleccion, in the presence of certayne
     sustres, confessour, and of o two prestes with other
     persones |r[f.27a] that wer presente at the same eleccion, as
     it schewith in e xiite chapter of thes addicions,
     more expresly.
|r25    Neuertheles yf sche be confermed tofore, he
     schal not come at the seyd grate, but he schal go
     streght into the monastery, be gydyng of the general
     confessour, to the dore only and no ferther, havyng
     with hym thre sad clerkes honeste men, for to assiste
|r30 hym.



|p51    |r[11]


        Of the whiche one schal rede the epistle, another
     the gosbel, and the iiide beyng in a cope, schal
     attende vpon the myter, so that one of hem be a notary.
        Wherfor the seyd dore opened, the pryores with
 |r5 another suster schall lede the buschop and hys clerkes
     into the sustres quyer, the bre*thren |r[f.27b] than begyn_nynge,
     and procedynge solemply with masse of e an_nunciacion
     of our lady.
        And sche that is sexteyne, moste ordeyn that the
|r10 awter in the sustres quyer be honestly arayed, and
     that the lectrons be redyly sette forth, wherevpon
     the epistle and gosbel schal be redde, of the seyd
     clerkes as it is seyd before, whiche schallen attende
     to nothyng but to e buschop.
|r15    The sustres as many as may, after the discrecion
     of the priores and saddeste sustres, schal be togyder
     in ther quyer, nothynge syngynge, but deuoutly
     praynge, behauynge them honestly as the religion asketh.
        Of the whiche two or thre at the leste assygned
|r20 by the priores, schal attende |r[f.27c] aboute the abbes all
     the masse tyme.
        The abbes schall knele in her prayers atte a
     forme, honestly arayed with tapettes and cuschenes,
     as it is accordynge, kepyng suche maner obseruaunces
|r25 in prostracions, knelynges, examynacions, makyng of
     obedience, subscription, or crosse, with suche other,
     as sche is assygned and enformed by the buschop and
     hys clerkes.
        And whan the offertory is bygon, sche schal offer
|r30 to the buschops hand, as the maner is, and go aene to



|p52    |r[11]


     her place, tyl sche be kleped after masse, to receyve
     the sacrament, and therfor sche moste be fastyng.
        And after, the buschop schal install her sayng [:)
     Accipe potestatem, et cetera. And |r[f.27d] whan he begynneth
 |r5 Te deum laudamus, the brethren schal procede with the
     same, all the belles ryngnge. And in the mene tyme,
     the sustres procedynge two and two togyder, schal kysse
     the abbes knelynge, sche syttynge in her stalle.
        Thys done with e preces folowynge, the buschop
|r10 with hys clerkes, by the gydyng of the priores and of
     another suster, schal lede the abbes into ther chapter:
     Where he schal do her to sytte on hys ryght hande;
     other sustres than stondyng in ther order. Ande the
     abbes hauynge the boke of the rewles, and constitucions
|r15 in her lappe, al the sustres schal make ther obedience
     to her, yf they haue not do it before, leynge ther
     ryghte |r[f.28a] handes vpon the seyd boke, the priores be_gynnynge
     yf ther be any, sayng thus eche after other.
     The wordes of obedience makynge.
|r20    In nomine patris et filii et spiritus sancti.
     Amen.
        I suster, expressyng her own name and syr name,
     byhote to the abbes of thys monastery, me for to
     kepe obedience, after the rewle of saynte austyn,
|r25 and constitucions of saynte birgitte.
        To whom the abbes than, taking the sustres
     handes ioyned togyder, betwene her handes, schal
     answer in thys wyse:
        And I admitte thyne obedience. In nomine pat_ris
|r30 et filii, et spiritus sancti Amen. And after



|p53    |r[11]


     thys schal come another suster and do the same wyse. |r[f.28b]
        And whan al have done, the buschop with hys
     clerkes schal goo oute like as he came in, and by the
     same dore, the sustres folowynge hym processionally,
 |r5 to the seyd dore, ther takyng hys blyssyng, so that
     he do of hys pontifical aray wiouteforth.
        And thus the abbes schall be confermed, conse_crate,
     and installed, by the buschop, with e same
     blyssynges, at an abbes of saynte benettes rewle is
|r10 blissed, excepte the staffe and the rynge, whiche
     rynge is blyssed tofore in her profession.
        On the morne folowynge, or another day more
     conuenyente, the confessour with hys brethren is
     wonte to speke with the abbes, to her comforte,
|r15 weschynge at |r[f.28c] sche may longe contynewe in her
     office in helth and prosperite, to e worschyp of
     god and wele of al the monasterye.
        An artikle to be red the day before euery
     eleccion[.]
|r20    Whansoeuer any abbes or general confessour,
     decese or resygne ther office, in any of tho
     monasteryes or places in ynglande, as wel nowe beyng,
     or in tyme to come for to be, ther schal none
     abbes, in none of tho monasteryes and places of the
|r25 same order, be made by sotel wyles, or violence, or
     in any other wyse be take vp to be abbes, but suche
     one as al the couente of the same monasteryes or
     places, by comen assente, or by the more party of



|p54    |r[11]


     the |r[f.28d] same sustres in nomber, and the sadder party
     after the drede of god, and the rewle of saynte
     sauiour, chese into ther abbes. Whom also the buschop
     schal conferme, yf sche be lawfully chosen, as it is
 |r5 rehersed.
        Also ther schal none be take vp to be general
     confessour, but suche one, into whom the abbes, with
     al the congregacion, bothe of sustres and brethren
     consent and chese after the drede of god, and the
|r10 same rewle of saynte sauiour. And the same so chosen,
     e buschop schal conferme after the rewle, into the
     general confessour.
        To whom also schal be graunted of the same
     buschop, ful power and auctorite to bynde and vn_bynde,
|r15 to correcte and reforme, |r[f.29a] notwithstondynge any
     maner constitucions from the courte and oer schewynge
     the contrary, what euer they be.



|p55    |r[12]


     TweIfte chapter. Of the forme of chesynge of the abbes
     and general confessour.
        Syth by our lordes rewle, and by the ordynaunce of
     pope martyn the fyfte, it is sufficiently prouyded, as
 |r5 it is expressed in the laste ende of the xite chapter
     of es addicions, what persones haue entres in the
     eleccion of the abbes and general confessour, ther re_mayneth
     nothyng to be added therto, but the forme of
     the eleccion, |r[f.29b] and the obseruaunces theraboute, and
|r10 that in tyme of vacacion, the monastery catche no
     hurte.
        Whan therfor any abbes or general confessour re_signe
     or decese, and the body of her or of hym after
     the custom is buryed, they schal within thre the
|r15 nexte dayes folowyng yf it may be in any wyse, go to
     the eleccion of a newe abbes or confessour, prefixing
     the day of the eleccion before. And the sustres,
     like as they by themselfe, procede to the eleccion of
     the abbes and chese her, so they schal by themselfe
|r20 prefixe the day, that ei schal procede to the eleccion.
     But as for e eleccion of the confessour, bothe sustres
     and brethren schal prefixe the day of hys elecci*on |r[f.29c],
     by cause that hys eleccion perteyneth bothe to the
     sustres and brethren.
|r25    Whan therfor it falleth at the office of the
     abbes is voyde, the priores with the counsel and
     assente of eghte sustres, elder, and holer in sadnes,
     chosen by e seyd priores and also of the serches,



|p56    |r[12]


     schal depute a sadde suster, experte in temporal rewle
     and gouernaunce, for to assiste the tresouresses, in
     suche thynges that moste be done outwarde, and may not
     be delayd to the confirmacion of the nexte abbes.
 |r5    The priores and the serches schal intende in_warde,
     in al thynges, pertynynge to the religion and
     kepyng therof, seyng that al officers inwarde, execute
     dew*ly |r[f.29d] ther ministracions as they dede before, tyl
     the new abbes be chosen and confermyd, nothyng addynge
|r10 nor lessynge to the governaunce vsed before.
        The keys of the comen seales, and of alle other
     thynges, wherof the kepyng perteyne to the abbes, the
     chauntres or another suster chosen by the priores and
     the seyd eght sustres, schal haue in kepyng in the
|r15 mene tyme.
        Whiche tyme et, ther schal nothyng be sealed
     with any comen seall, but only the letter certifica_tory
     of the eleccion of the abbes to e buschop.
     Alle other inges that the dede abbes hadde, schal
|r20 remayne vnder suer warde and kepynge, tyl the newe
     abbes be confermed, excepte suche |r[f.30a] thynges, that by
     the rewle, owe with al godely spede, to be deled to
     the pore and nedy[.] Nevertheles, yf e olde abbes,
     wylfully and frely resygne her office, al the for_seyde
|r25 thynges schal remayne in her handes, tyl the
     newe abbes be confermed.
        Whan the day of the eleccion is com, and dyuyne
     seruyse that belongeth to them for to performe afore
     none is ended, the brethren immediatly schal synge
|r30 masse of the holy gost solemply in stede of hygh



|p57    |r[12]


     masse, in solempne aray, as the tyme asketh. Whiche
     ended, the chauntres with another suster whom sche
     wyl take to her, schal begynne solempnly the ympn
     Ueni creator spiritus. Whiche schal be songe |r[f.30b] to
 |r5 the ende, quyer to quyer of the sustres. Whiche doon,
     the priores in a lowe voyce with note, schal say thys
     versicle: Emitte spiritum tuum, and thes two collectes:
     Deus qui corda, and Acciones nostras, with: Per
     christum dominum nostrum. Amen, both vnder one. And
|r10 whyles the sustres synge thys, the confessour with
     hys brethren schal say the same, with the seyd versicle
     and collectes.
        Thys done, the brethren schal begynne ther sexte,
     and the sustres chapter belle ronge forthwith, they
|r15 schal spedely come to the crates of the eleccion,
     where as they may speke with the breren and seculers
     togyder.
        To the whiche crates also schal come the general
     confessour, with two of hys bre*thren |r[f.30c] confessours to
|r20 the sustres, suche as he wyl take with hym, for to
     assiste, and be ere than as witnesses only, and not
     for to haue any voyce in the eleccion. And whan al
     be come, the xxiiiiti article of the bulle of pape
     martyn the fyfte schal be redde, whiche begynneth thus:
|r25 Obeuntibus vero, vel cedentibus et cetera. And this
     article also is to be red amonge the sustres the day



|p58    |r[12]


     before euery eleccion, as it is expressed in the xite
     chapter of these addicions.
        After thys, the constitucions of the thre formes
     of eleccion schal be declared in englysch, by some
 |r5 wele lerned manne in the lawe of holy chirche, beyng
     withoute at the seyd cra*tes |r[f.30d], and a notary with hym.
     That is to say the wey of the holy goste, the wey of
     scrutyny, and the wey of compromys. And yf it plese
     the sustres to accepte and preferre e wey of the
|r10 holy goste, than the priores or any other suster may
     say thus:  What seme e of suche a suster .N. expres_synge
     her proper name and syrname. Me semeth that
     sche is an able persone to thys office. And yf al
     answer it pleseth them for to haue her abbes, or
|r15 eue any other answer hauynge the strengthe of ful
     consente, thys wey is well spedde, yf so be ther
     were no trety nor no menes made before to chese her
     abbes, so that sche be of sufficient age and born |r[f.31a] in
     wedlok. Nor it hurteth not thys eleccion, thof sche
|r20 so chosen assente not to her nominacion. But yf any
     other do it, or yf any trety or compacte be made to_fore
     for to chese her, an is is wey al to squatte.
     If the wey of the holy gostel prevayle, the pryores
     schal say in thys wyse: In nomine patris et filii
|r25 et spiritus sancti. Amen. I suster N. N. priores of
     is monastery of saynt sauiour, and of seyntes mary the



|p59    |r[12]


     virgyn and birgitte of syon, of the order of saynte
     austyn kleped of saynte sauiour, of the diocyse of
     london. In the name and byhalue of al vs chesers,
     werkyng with vs the grace of the holy goste before
 |r5 inwardly callyd and bysoughte, che*se |r[f.31b] suche a
     suster .N. N. expressyng her proper name and her
     by name, expresly professed in this monastery, begynge
     of sufficicate and lauful age, fre of birth and borne
     in wedlock, wyse and discrete, into the abbes of thys
|r10 our monastery.
     Of the wey of scrutyny[.]
        If it happe by the demerites of the chesers,
     that it pleseth not god to enspire them the wey of
     the holy goste, than they schal go to the wey of
|r15 scrutyny, whiche is the ordynary wey.
        To the lauful execucion wherof, alle the sustres
     moste name thre sustres, for to serche and knowe the
     wylles of all. Whyche sustres so named, in nowyse
     schal lette any suster, be sygne or worde, or be any
|r20 other me*ne |r[f.31c], that sche may not say and frely name
     whom sche wyll; nor reuele to any what other say, or
     whom any of hem name to be abbesse. And al her wylles
     and nominacions herde in the presence of the general
     confessour and of hys two seyd brethren, of the lerned
|r25 man of lawe and of e seyde notary, the same notary
     forthwi schal putte in wrytynge as they come, whom
     every suster nameth to the abbes. And sche than in
     e forme that foloweth schal be chosen into the abbes,
     whom al the couente, or elles the more and and sadder



|p60    |r[12]


     party haue named erto, so that the persone so named be
     eligible. And yf it so fall that for the dyuersite of
     voyces, dyuersly dy*recte |r[f.31d] into dyuers persones, none
     suche persone et is founde, than schal they haue re_course
 |r5 to a newe scrutyny, and neuer cese of suche
     recourse, tyl the more and holer party of them, haue
     directe ther voyces, into a certayn persone able to be
     chosen into the abbes.
        This done and publysched in general, one of tho
|r10 thre serches whom ei wyll assigne among themselfe,
     schal pronounce and chese that persone, into whom the
     couente, or e more and holer party haue consentyd,
     sayng us:  In nomine patris et filii et spiritus
     sancti Amen.
|r15    I .N. N. suche a suster professyd in thys monastery
     of seynte sauyour, and of sayntes mary the virgyn and
     birgitte of syon, of |r[f.32a] the order of saynte austyn named
     of seynte sauyour, of e dyocyse of london, one of the
     serches taken and made in the acte of thys presente
|r20 eleccion, in al that I haue power as in thys acte, and
     in the same power of that other two serches, and in
     ther name, and in the name  of al our sustres of thys
     seyd monastery, chese in comen suche a suster .N. N.
     of is monastery, expresly professed, beyng in suffi_cient
|r25 and lawful age, borne in matrimony, fre, wyse,
     and discrete, into oure abbes, of thys oure seyd
     monasterye.



|p61    |r[12]


        Whiche eleccion us execute and fynysched, eyther
     be e weye of compromys, or be the weye of the holy |r[f.32b]
     goste, the chauntres solempnly schal begyn forthwith
     thys psalme[:] Te deum laudamus[.] Whiche psalme the
 |r5 sustres schal performe with songe quyer to quyer to the
     ende. And the electe to be abbes, schal be borne or
     led after the couente by the elder sustres into ther
     quyer, and ther sche schal lye prostrate before the
     awter in the longe veyne, tyl the oryson folowyng be
|r10 endede. For whan the seyde psalme is done, the sustres
     knelyng in ther stalles schal say withoute note: Kyri_eleyson,
     Christeleyson, Kyrieleyson, Pater noster, Aue
     maria[.] And than the priores, or els the chauntres
     yf the priores be electe, shal say in a softe voyce
|r15 with note[:] Et ne nos. Con*firma |r[f.32c] hoc deus quod
     operatus es in nobis [.] A templo tuo in ierusalem
     tibi offerent reges munera. Domine exaudi. Oremus.
     Omnipotens sempiterne deus, miserere huic famule tue,
     et dirige eam secundum  clemenciam tuam, in viam salu_tis
|r20 eterne, vt te donante, tibi placita cupiat, et
     tota virtute perficiat. Per christum dominum nostrum.
     Amen.
        Thys done, the electe schal ryse; and whiles
     this is in doyng amonge the sustres, the confessour
|r25 with hys brethren schall say the same withoute note
     in ther quyer, al the belles ryngyng in the mene tyme.
     And tham the confessour or another brother preste,
     requiryd by the prioresse, schal publysch the e*leccion |r[f.32d]
     and persone that is chosen, to al the peple



|p62    |r[12]


     there presente, and forthwith after this, the electe
     schal come with the couente to the crates of her elec_cion,
     and there schal be requyred than her consente.
     And sche so requyred, schal aske no longe auysemente
 |r5 but et in case sche may aske respite tyl after mete.
        Whan her consente is had, than is the eleccion in
     goodly haste to be notifyed to the buschop diocesan, or
     to hys vicar general, vnder open writyng, sealyd with
     the comen seale. Whiche eleccion, the ordynary oweth
|r10 after the reguler institutes and the popes ordynaunce
     to conferme, withoute any lenger delay, examynacion,
     discussion, or |r[f.33a] solempnite.
        Ande to the electe so confermed, thof sche be
     not et consecratt, al e sustres schal make obedience.
|r15 But sche schal in nowyse attempte for to do aughte,
     nor meddle of the abbes office, nor associate herselfe
     to the couente, tyl sche be confermed. Wherfore yf it
     may be, sche schal be confermed, sacred, and stalled,
     in one day, and so in the presence of the buschop, al
|r20 the sustres schal make obedience to her, after the
     forme expressyd in the xite chapter of these addicions.
     Of the eleccion of the general confessour.
        And whan the office of the confessour is voyde,
     ther schal no chaunge be made of vnder confessours,
|r25 nor of any |r[f.33b] persone fyrst assygned to them, tyl the
     newe general confessour be chosen and confermed. Saue



|p63    |r[12]


     the sustres at wer dayly with the confessour decesed,
     or for hys demerites deposed, schal make er confession
     for a tyme to some of the seyde vnder confessoures.
     But yf it happe that the office of the general confes_sour
 |r5 be voyde be resignacion, than al the sustres and
     brethren that were with hym dayly before, schal abyde
     with hym tyl a newe general confessour be chosen and
     confermed.
        For whos and in whos eleccion, al thynges schal
|r10 be obserued as it is expressed before aboute the elec_cion
     of the abbes. Excepte, that the prefyxyng or set_tyng
     of the day of hys elec*cion |r[f.33c], schal be done by
     the brethren and the sustres, as it is seyd in e be_gynnyng
     of thys chapter, and the masse of e holy
|r15 goste schal be after al dyuyne seruyse of sustres and
     breren. Also Veni creator and Te deum laudamus schal
     be songe by the brethern and seyd by e sustres, with
     the seyd preces, and thys eleccion schal be made at
     the same crates where the eleccion of the abbes is
|r20 wonte to be made.
        Ande yf the eleccion procede by scrutyny, than
     schal al the sustres and brethren, chese two sustres
     and two breren prestes, for to serche and here the
     voyces of al the sustres and brethren. And that
|r25 preste that is eligible, schal be assumpte into e
     general confessour |r[f.33d] of the monastery, into whom the
     more, and the sadder party of sustres and breren
     with the abbes togyder consente, and the abbes and



|p64    |r[12]


     none other persone, schal pronounce the wordes of hys
     eleccion. And the ryngyng of belles, with the pub_lyschyng
     to the peple, and certificacion to the bus_chop
     with al other obseruaunces, schal be done as it is
 |r5 expressed before of the abbes, the electe nothyng
     takynge vpon hymselfe, perteynyng only to the office of
     the general confessour, tyl he be confermed.
        The buschop, wher that euer he be, may be hys
     lettres patent, conferme the electe, and in the same
|r10 lettres graunte hym fulle power and auctorite |r[f.34a] to
     bynde and vnbynde, correcte and reforme, and also com_mitte
     fulle power to one of the brethren a preste, for
     to stalle hym and sette hym in hys dewe place, both in
     the chirch and in the chapter hows. Neuertheles, yf
|r15 he wyl do al thys in hys own persone, he schal con_ferme
     hym atte the crates where he was chosen, execu_tynge
     al other thynges in thys acte as it pleseth hym.
        If it fal so that the monastery be voyde at ones
     of an abbes and general confessour, the abbes is fyrst
|r20 to be chosen and confermed, and than the general con_fessour
     withoute delay, yf it may be.



|p65    |r[13]


     |r[f.34b] Thrittenth chapter[.] How officers schal be put in
     and take oute.
        For religious persones be called officers, not only
     for they vnder ther souereynes, haue cure and charge of
 |r5 temporal thynges, but also of spiritual cures, and for
     the minstracion of al necessaryes, longe principally to
     the abbes as to the couent and congregacion of is
     monastery, and it passeth her power to do alle alone;
     therfor amonge the sustres thes officers ar to be hadde:
|r10 That is to say a pryores, the serches, the chauntres,
     and subchauntresses, the sexteyne, and vndersexteyn,
     the treseres, and vndertreseres, the chambres, and vnder
     chambresse, the celeres, the fermeres, the keper of the
     |r[f.34c] waschyng howse, the keper of the garden and of the
|r15 frutes erof, the keper of the butry and of the frey_tour,
     the keper of the whele, the keper of the grates,
     the keper of the reuelacion gate, the keper of the
     cloyster and dortour dores, with al suche other officers.
     Whom, how be it the abbes may chaunge every ere, or
|r20 as ofte as sche feleth it expedient; et no suster
     schal be put into any office, or be dischaurged vtterly
     of any office, but in the comen chapter; but yf any
     grete cause or soden case, arte her to do other wyse.
     And eche officer yf nede be, shal haue one suster or
|r25 mo, depute to her for to helpe her in her office, after
     the discrecion of the abbesse. |r[f.34d]
        Whan therfor the abbes wyll put any suster into
     any office or oute, sche muste calle a chapter, and



|p66    |r[13]


     than fyrst of al, telle the cause of the callynge, and
     after calle her by name, whom sche purposeth to put in
     or oute. Ande the suster callyd, anone sche schal ryse
     and come tofore the abbes. To whom the abbes, yf sche
 |r5 purpose to put her in office, schal say thus: suster  .
  N. N.  I assigne ow this ministracion or occupacion,
     expressyng it by name. And whan the suster hereth
     this, sche schal lye downe prostrate at the abbes fete.
     To whom the abbes schal say thus: What say e? Sche
|r10 schal answer thus: I aske grace and licen*ce |r[f.35a] to
     speke. The abbes schal say to her aene: Ryseth vp.
     And than the suster schal ryse, and mekly say in suche
     wyse vnder fewe wordes knelyng[:] Moder, e knowe
     ryght wele myne vndiscrecion and vnhabilite, to execute
|r15 thys chargeful occupacion[.] I beseche ow therfor
     that e put not thys charge vpon me, but that in al_wyse,
     I may be excused therof and some other suster,
     endoweth with discrecion and experience may be charged
     therwith.
|r20    To whom the abbes, yf sche be utterly determyned
     to haue her in the seyd office, schal than say thus:
     Notwithstondyng our excuse that e make or schal
     make herein, I wyll that e accepte obediently |r[f.35b] thys
     charge, and to our power and kunnynge fulfyl it
|r25 effectuelly. Wherfor presume e no more to excuse
     ow herein, but go to our place. Nevertheles yf ther
     longe any keys to that office, the abbes schal delyuer
     hem to her openly, or sche go from her. And whan sche



|p67    |r[13]


     is boden go to her place, sche schal fyrste enclyne,
     and so go to her own place as sche is wonte, but yf it
     be a newe priores, as it is expressed in the lvti
     chapter of thys boke.
 |r5    The sustres that schal be discharged, schal be
     called forth as it is seyd before, and to her that
     hath wele fulfylled her obedience and occupacion, the
     abbesse schal say in such wyse[:] Suster .N. N. I |r[f.35c]
     thanke owe hertly, that e haue so diligently and so
l0 effectually, fulfylled the mynystracion, that I com_mytted
     to ow to execute. But for certeyn causes
     mouynge me, I wylle preue other in the same, how
     diligent ei wyl be, and what habilite they haue, and
     therfor, I discharge owe therof.
|r15    Sche herynge thys, anone sche schal fal down
     prostrate at the abbes fete, offryng herselfe to
     kesse them. Whiche the abbes in nowyse schal suffer,
     but rather put down her ryght hande, that sche may
     kesse that. And yf sche had any keys, perteynynge to
|r20 her office, sche schal there openly delyver them to the
     abbes. Whiche done, |r[f.35d] sche schal by the conmaunde_mente
     of the abbes take her own place, dewe to her
     reguler profession thof sche had be priores in office.
        And whan the abbes hathe dyscharged a suster
|r25 of any office at keys longe to, sche schal not comen_ly
     enter into suche an office, withoute the presence
     and assistence, both of her that is discharged, and of
     her that is newly charged, therwith, that it may
     trewly and veryly beknowen, in what state it is de_lyuered
|r30 and taken. And et for the more certeynte,



|p68    |r[13]


     the abbes schal take with her some other sustres that
     haue moste experience in suche occupacions, for to
     bere witnes.
        If |r[f.36a] any suster be discharged of her office, for
 |r5 open negligence, e abbes schal say to her in suche
     wyse: Suster .N. N. I put ow into suche an occupa_cion
     of grete truste, and e haue had ow negligently
     and euel therin; and therfor nowe I dyscharge owe
     therof, purposyng by goddes grace, to prouyde to the
|r10 comente of a better.
        Sche heryng thys, anone sche schal fal down
     prostrat at the abbes fete. And whan sche is com_maunded
     to ryse, sche schal openly, and mekly, knel_yng,
     knowlage her negligence and unprofitable deme_nynges,
|r15 and forthwith aske mercy and foreuenes of
     the abbes, and of al the sustres, an to be punysched
     as be |r[f.36b] trespas asketh.
     How officers owe to be disposed in euery office.
        None schal be sette in any office or occupacion
|r29 of charge, but suche as the abbes may suerly truste,
     that ei kan, and may, and wyl do, and kepe the charge
     that is leyd upon them. Which euerichone owe to be
     of goode name and fame amonge her sustres and brethren,
     and of laudable lyfe and conuersacion. Swete and
|r25 gentel in wordes, softe and prudente in answers, besy
     and pacient in labours, sad and honeste in maners,
     not drunklewe nor wastres, not wrethful nor troblous,



|p69    |r[13]


     not lyght and veyne in wordes, nor over grete spekers,
     but sober, demewre, and chereful to speke to, discrete,
     pesyble, wyse, sad, cir*cumspect |r[f.36c] and wele auysed in
     euynge and takynge of answers, knowyng to whom, what,
 |r5 how moche, and how, they delyuer or receyue any ing
     inwarde or owtwarde and of whom. Whos sadnes is not
     wonte to suffer them notably to square, in er de_menynge  .
 
        In distribucion of necessaryes to the sustres and
|r10 brethren, they shal not serue one, all of the beste,
     another al of the werste, nor for any fauour, eue one
     to moche, another to lytel, but they shal delyuer to
     eche after ther nede, withoute grudgynge and accepcion
     of persones, consyderyng and ponderyng more the infir_mite
|r15 and nede, than the fauour of any person, |r[f.36d] so
     et that the eldest of eche degre, be euer serued of
     the beste.
        Whan they haue not redy atte hande that is asked,
     they owe to excuse them goodly and honestly, promyttyng
|r20 to puruey for it as sone as ei may, in al goodly haste.
        They that nede any thyng, they owe not to aske it
     commaundyngly, or with thretynges, but goodly, with a
     maner reuerence prayng to haue that is nedeful to them,
     with other circumstaunces expressed tofore in the
|r25 thryd chapter of is boke. And thof they haue not
     forthwith that they aske, or yf it be denyed hem, et
     they owe not to take thys greuosly, but suffer pacient_ly,
     for |r[f.37a] as sayth seynte austyn, it is better to nede
     somwhat, than to haue more than nedeth, and seynte



|p70  [13]


     paule had a grete ioy to be vexed with hunger, thyrste,
     colde, and nakednes. Unresonable, or euell askers, or
     yf any aske any thynge not to be asked, the officers
     schal not make them sory, but they may answer thus to
 |r5 them curteysly: Suster or brother, yf I scholde take
     ou that e aske, I trowe I scholde offende in the de_lyueraunce
     therof, and e in the receyuynge. Neuerthe_les,
     late the souereyne say and e schal haue with a
     goode wyll that e desire. And so by suche demenynge
|r10 and sufferaunce, eche per*sone |r[f.37b] schal be in pece, and
     eche officer kepe her office withoute grete offence.
        Aboute e seke also, they owe to be euer atten_daunte
     and diligente, and do ther deuers, that the
     goodes of the monastery be not spended in waste, nor
|r15 deuoured and loste, wherby almes to the poer and nedy,
     myght be withdrawen or abated, thorough ther negly_gence  .
     Knowyng for certeyn, that ther is not the
     leste threde in the clothe, nor the lest crom in the
     lofe, nor the ferdyng in the tylle, nor the droppe in
|r20 the vesselle, but that they schal accuse the oweners
     at the day of dome, yf they be mysspended. Wherfor
     ei owe not to receyue, nor pay, nor spende |r[f.37c] any
     thynge outwarde or inwarde unprofitably, withoute
     special or general licence, assygnemente commaunde_mente
|r25 or sufferaunce of the abbes, wytyngly and ex_presly
     made. Hauyng a besy warnes, that whan they be
     kalled to rekenyng, they be not to seke for to answer



|p71    |r[13]


     to euery thyng, clerly withoute any colour and feyth_fully,
     that hath be taken to them, how it is spended.
     And therfor it is nedeful to em, that they kepe wele
     ther scrowes and bylles indented, leste any thyng go
 |r5 oute of mende.
        Forthermore they owe to haue grete warnes that
     they neuer speke alone, other wyse than the rewle suf_freth,
     and this vnder the perel of er sowles. Neuer_theles
     |r[f.37d] whan they may gete no suster to here them,
|r10 and the mater is suche, that it may not conueniently
     be taryed withoute hurte of the monastery, than in
     suche cases the abbes may licence them to speke as the
     mater requyreth in softe and fewe wordes, alone in tho
     thynges only, that concerne the wele and honeste of
|r15 the place. But none schal than enquyre after tydynges
     how the worlde goeth, or how he or sche fareth, or
     any suche other thyng, concernyng in any wyse ther own
     solace and comforte, withoute one herer at the leste,
     after the forme of the rewle, and as it expressed in
|r20 the thyrd chapter of thes addicions, confermed by |r[f.38a]
     the buschops iniunccions.



|p72    |r[14]


     Fourtenth chapter.  Of the places wherin silence is
     streytly to be kepte.
          In the chirche, quyer, freytour, cloyster, dortour,
     and in the howse of secrete nede, silence is euer to be
 |r5 kepte. Nevertheles, whan case cometh of very nede, the
     souereyne may dispense with that silence, in any of the
     seyde places, and that only after the mater requyreth
     and no ferer.
         Also silence after some conuenience, is to be kepte
|r10 in the lybrary, whyls any |r[f.38b] suster is there alone in
     recordyng of her redynge.  Also in e waschyng howse in
     tyme of waschynge, but yf it be in a stylle voyce for
     thynges necessary to be spoken, or for to be asked or
     had. Also in the chapter, after the begynnyng of the
|r15 seconde pele to the collacion, but yf it be also in a
     stylle voyce, for a thynge necessary, honeste, and pro_fitable,
     and in al place nygh to the chirche.
        And therfor, whan anythynge is to be asked, or
     spoken, notyfyed, or charged, in tyme or place of
|r20 strayte silence, this schal be done by sygnes end not
     by wordes, yf it may be expressed with any vsual sygne.
     If it may not be so expressed, nor the place chaunged,
     where |r[f.38c] it falleth, than it may be expressed in a
     stylle voyce and fewe wordes, as it is seyd before.
|r25 Of styldes.
        Forthermore, for ther schal be asked a streyte
     rekenynge of euery ydel worde; therfor moche speche is
     to be fled of alle, namely after meles, for an lyghtly
     the tunge fyndeth mater to speke and trespas. And for


73    72[14]


     sylence dewly kepte, is a synguler worchyppe to god, it
     is ryght, that not only greuous speche be kytte away, but
     also that the tunge be restreyned with the brydel of taci_turnite
     or stylnes, whan it is leful to speke, for the
 |r5 grete profite of silence, thof the speche be goode. For
     they that kanne moder ther tunges beste, be moste wyse.|r[f.38d]
     Wherfor the speche of alle, schal be meke and lowe, softe
     and demewre, swete andd trewe, euer of spiritual thynges,
     and of very necessaryes after the rewle, delytynge euer,
|r10 rather to here and be stylle, than to speke; and not
     vse to answer but to thynges asked.  And whan the sustres
     and brethren come to speke togyder atte  crates, they
     schal euer be lycensed and associat after the rewle on
     eyther party:  And ey schal speke sadly and reli_giously
|r15 that is to be spoken, not multyplyeng vnprofit_able
     wordes nothyng to purpos, nor dissolutly crye oute
     with a loude voyce; but softly, soberly, and with a
     quyet schortenes, they schal say that is to be seyde;
     and sone take ther leue and go ther weyes. |r[f.39a]
|r20      Whan the sustres in conuenient tymes and places,
     speke any to other, they schal haue ther handes within
     ther cowle sleues, or els, honestly, and religiously,
     ioyned togyder, holde hem before em. None of hyghnesse
     schal thou another in spekynge, but eche schal speke
|r25 reuerently to other, the onger namely to the elder.
     Nor none in comen speche, schal say, thys is myne, but
     thys is owres. Saue eche oweth to say of hys carnal
     frendes, thys is my fader or my moder, or my cosen, and
     of hys synne, thys is my synne.
|r30      Whan they speke to outewarde persone or persones,



|p74    |r[14)


     they schal behaue em as it is seyd of spekynge inwarde
     to sustres or brethren, but with |r[f.39b] moche more warenes[.]
     Not medlynge ther speche with seculer fables and fryuoles,
     nor et gladly here no suche thynges. But yf any frov_tles
 |r5 thynge be spoken, they schal be stylle, dyssymulyng
     as yf they herde it not, and eyther they schal speke of
     thynges more profitable, or els sone bydde them farewele
     and go from them. If they here any scurilite or any
     other worldly vanyte, they moste haue grete warnes that
|r10 they telle not is to other sustres, butte schewe forth
     with, that they disdeyne and lothe to here suche thynges.
     Schewyng themselfe in al ther wordes, gestes, and maners,
     that they be the very spowses of criste, thynkyng that
     they be euer in hys gracious presence, |r[f.39c] and haue drede
|r15 to offende hys benignyte at is presente ouerall.
     Of sygnes vsed instede of speche.
        Also they schal haue warnes in alwyse that they
     speke not with ther fyngers, whan they schewe anythyng,
     at is, at they exercise none inordinate sygne of vn_stablenes.
|r20 For how be it that sygnes be necessaryly
     ordeyned, for to exclude occasion of ydel, vayne,
     superflue, and vnprofitable speche, et it is neuer
     leful to vse them withoute some reson and profitable
     nede.  For oftetyme more hurteth an euel sygne, than
|r25 an euel worde, and more offence it may be to god.
        The grete festes that the sustres may speke into
     the seculers, be al tho fes*tes |r[f.39d] of sayntes, ordeyned
     by the chirche to be kepte as hygh as the sonday.
     Of openyng of the wyndow and syght of seculers.
|r30     If any sustres frendes, desire to se her, e



|p75    |r[14]


     abbes schal not lytly graunte thys but seldom in the
     ere, but yf e same suster haue a wyll to be seen, of
     her dere and honeste frendes. And it is gode, that the
     abbes take counsell of the general confessour, and know
 |r5 by hym whan she schal open e wyndowe; for he is con_seruatour
     of the order, and oweth to take hede that al
     poyntes of the rewle be kepte. Whan any sustres schal
     be seen, the abbes schal warne them, that namely than,
     they behaue them godely and religiously, in countynaunce,
|r10 in chere, and |r[f.40a] in al ther meuynges. Neuertheles, yf
     they wyl make themselfe a grete crowne in heuen, late
     other se them, and they see none. For so it is redde
     in the lyues of holy faders, that whan the moder of
     one, came to se her sone, he ede oute to her wynkyng
|r15 that sche scholde see hym; but forsothe he wolde nott
     see her in any wyse. And it is seyd in our sauiours
     rewle, that yf the wyndowe be not opened, so moche the
     more plenteuous rewarde, is promysed to em in tyme to
     come.
|r20 Of bodely behauoure
        Moreouer, for by the outewarde bodyly meuyng, is
     ofte knowen the inward disposicion of be sowle, they
     owe to moderate al ther bodyly |r[f.40b] behauour in such wyse,
     that they neuer excede the bowndes of honeste, neyther
|r25 in laughyng, stondyng, syttyng, nor goyng. For as sayth
     e wyse man, the arayment of the body, dissolute
     laughynge, and the entres of a person, schewe what he
     is. And salomon sayth, the apostata, goeth frownyng
     with the mowthe, trampleth and fydleth with the fete,
|r30 twynkleth with the eyen, and speketh with hys fyngers.



|p76    |r[14]


     Of lahhynge.
         None therfor schal vse presumptuosly to laugh ouer
     moche, or oute of mesure dissolutly[.] But whan the
     souereyne, or any of the elder sustres begyn to laughe
 |r5 vpon any other suster or sustres, by wey of recreacion,
     curtesy wyll and very |r[f.40c] loue and charite, that they
     smyle or laugh aene soberly.
     Of stondyng.
        Whersoeuer they stonde, namely in diuyne seruyse
|r10 in the chirche, they schal not stonde vpon oo fote
     alone holdyng up at other, nor one ouer another, nor
     et holde ther chynnes or chekes in ther handes,
     lenynge notably with ther bakkes or armes, nor caste
     oute ther armes or handes, nor schrugge with the
|r15 scholders, but they schal stonde vpryghte, holdyng
     ther handes before them honestly, within er manteles
     or cowle sleues vnnethes lenynge to the stalles, but
     yf nede compelle them to do other wyse.
     Of syttynge regulerly[.]
|r20    Also whersomeuer they sytte, they schal |r[f.40d] sytte vp
     ryght, gaderynge the extremyteys of ther mantels and
     cowles aboute hem that they flete nott abrode, holdyng
     ther handes within ther cowle sleues in places of si_lence,
     and not stretche oute ther legges to ferre, nor
|r25 ley one kne ouer another, but couer ther fete honestly
     vnder ther clothes, and not sytte fydlynge with hem.



|p77    |r[14]


     And whan they sytte betwene two sustres, they shal sytte
     so ordinatly and so directly, that neyther they haue
     ther faces to that one, nor ther bakkes turned any dele
     to that oer, nor et caste lyghtly ther hedes aboute,
 |r5 nor lene to one syde more than to anoer.
     Of goyng and syt kepyng.
        In ther goynge also, all moste behaue |r[f.41a] them so
     regulerly and honestly that they go no more on the
     ryght syde than on the lefte. Not to faste nor to
|r10 softe, withoute rennyng and harde goynge, withoute
     gettyng and meuynge of the scholders, withoute swyng_lynge
     of armes or of handes, not stretchyng oute the
     nekke nor loke aboute to besyly, nor holde to ryght vp
     the hede, but somwhat down to the erth and go forth
|r15 symply, schewynge ouer alle the sygnes of mekenes,
     remembrynge the meke publican, that durste not lefte
     vp hys eyes to heuen, but he kepte hys syght downe,
     and smytyng hys breste seyd inwardly: Deus propicius
     esto michi peccatori. And so in al ther meuynges |r[f.41b]
|r20 after the rewle of saynte austyn, they be bounde to
     schewe er gode conuersacion effectually.
        Moreover, none schal go from thys monastery to
     another, thof it be of thys same order, but yf ther be
     another, or mo monasteryes of thys same order, in
|r25 thys reame only of ynglande bylded, founded, and suf_ficiently
     endowed. For than they may go to any of tho



|p78    |r[14]


     monasteryes, after the forme expressed in the bulle of
     pope martyn the fyfte, and not elles. Neuertheles, yf
     the monastery as god forbede it, fal on fyre, or be
     assayled of enmys sodenly, or by verye lyklynes and
 |r5 certeynte, any suche perell is to falle, than they may
     auoyde the mo*nastery |r[f.41c] yf nede be for a whyle, and
     turne home aene, whan suche perel is passed.



|p79    |r[15]


     Fyftenth chapter.  Of the ere of profe and renouncyng
     therof.
        If any aske this religion in e way of charite,
     the abbes stondynge, or syttyng in a chayre at the
 |r5 crates, with the hole couente, in ther hole habite,
     stondyng aboute her, eche in ther order, religiously,
     the wyndowe open, schal bydde her telle her desyre,
     before alle the couente. Which herde, yf the nombre be
     fulle, sche schal say: We may re*ceyue |r[f.41d] none ouer the
|r10 nombre, lymytt in our lordes rewle. If it be voyde, or
     in schorte tyme lykly to be voyde, sche schal say:
     none may be professed in thys religion, before an hole
     ere, of sufficiente probacion outwarde, nor after
     ther profession, go to another religion.
|r15   If sche than et desyre to be admytted to the
     3ere of profe, the abbes fyrst schal examen her, how
     longe sche hath stonde in her purpose towarde thys
     religion, and wheyther sche be meued therto of her
     selfe, or of any other persone.
|r20   Seconde, yf sche be fre of all worldly bondes,
     that is to say oute of dette, borowage, seruyse, bon_dage,
     sentence of cursynge, wedlokke, con*tracte, |r[f.42a]
     vowes, infamy, executry, heresy, and suche other. Also
     yf sche desyre thys religion principally for god, or
|r25 for her own ese, or for any preuy sekenes or impotency,
     or els, yf schame or payne of worldly aduersite, or any
     suche other thynge compelleth her therto.
        And after thys, for the thyrd thynge, she schal



|p80    |r[15]


     telle her of the dures of the religion[.]  That is to
     say, contempte of the worlde, foretyng of fader and
     moder, and of al worldly frendschyp, but as the rewle
     suffreth, and e chirche determyneth, moche fastynge,
 |r5 many water dayes, grete watche, erly rysynge, longe
     seruyse, dayly labour, streyte sylence, loweste place,
     harde commaundemen*tes |r[f.42b] of the souereyne, redy obedi_ence,
     forsakynge of proper wyll, pacience in aduersite,
     sufferaunce of alle, scharpe correcciones, and many
|r10 suche other. Whiche may lyghtly be suffred for a
     whyle, but for to contynewe for terme of lyfe, it is
     harde werke to some.
        To the whiche thynges, yf sche be not agreable,
     the abbesse schal honestly auoyde her.
|r15 If the abbes thynke her disposed to thys re_ligion,
     she shal here her habilite in voyce, syngynge
     and redynge. Whiche known, sche schal byd her abyde
     vpon an answer, into another conuenyent tyme, tylle
     sche haue had communycacion with her sustres. From
|r20 whom in thys case, sche may hyde noyng, for fauour or
     drede, or |r[f.42c] for thretenyng of any persone, of what
     power or dignite at euer he be.
        After thys, the conuente syttynge in the chapter
     howse, the abbes shal aske of eche suster in order by
|r25 name, begynnynge at the eldeste, wheyther they wyll
     haue her admytted, to the ere of profe or no. And
     yf the more sadder party answer nay, tellyng resonable
     causes why, the abbes before all the couente, or a
     parte of them, schal eue here a goodly answer and
|r30 late her goo.
        And than the chauntres schal do thys



|p81    |r[15]


     to be wryten, that no suche be admytted in tyme to come,
     but yf the sadder parte of e couente, be other wyse
     auysed. Whiche also is to be obserued of |r[f.42d] hem, that
     wyll not renounce ther ere of profe, whan they be
 |r5 requyred regulerly, and also of them, that haue habilite
     to religion, but et ther entres into thys religion is
     not expedient.
        If the more holer and sadder party, graunte to
     haue her admyttyd to the ere of profe, the abbes schal
|r10 haue suche maner wordes to the seyd persone:
     Doughter, e haue cause to elde preysynges to god.
     I haue comenyd with my sustres, and I fynde hem ryght
     glad of our holy purpose, and agreable to and oure desire.
     And than sche schal say us, be ther one, be ther many
|r15 of them:
        In the name of oure lorde ihesu criste, and of hys
     moste holy moder, oure la*dy |r[f.43a] saynte mary, of saynte
     birgitte, saynt austyn, and of alle sayntes, and in the
     name of the hole congregacion of sustres and brethren,
|r20 and in myne own name, I admitte owe to our ere of
     profe, after the tenour of the rewle of saynte sauyour.
     Procedeth therfor and assay ourselfe, how e may
     accorde with some maner obseruaunces of the seyd holy
     rewle, and thys ere. And after a thre monthes come
|r25 aene vnto vs, and in the mene tyme, we schal take a
     more deliberacion of ow.
        Sche heryng thys, schal eue thankyngges to god,
     and to al the congregacion, ande after thys go with a
     lowe hede, and forehede couered, lyuyng vnder the |r[f.43b]
|r30 obedience of the abbes.  And it schal be seyd to her,



|p82    |r[15]


     that sche kepe the tymes sette, of comyng aene, and
     also sche muste be enformed, how sche schal demene and
     preue herself in the seyd ere, with some obseruaunce
     acordyng to the rewle. Also sche must be counseled
 |r5 to speke with the general confessour amonge, for helth
     of her sowle; and the abbes shal haue to her, wordes
     and commaundementes, some tyme of scharpnes, to preue
     her pacience and obedience; and also the rewle and
     statutes, arn to be redde to her, in tho poyntes only,
|r10 that concerne her persone, that sche may knowe wherto
     sche cometh.
        Forthermore, the abbes in the mene whyle, may en_quyre,
     or do to be enqui*red, |r[f.43c] more diligently of other
     persones at know her, of her lyfe and conuersacion,
|r15 desyrynge yf nede be, lettres of testymony thervpon, so
     that the day of her admyttynge and month with the ere
     of oure lorde, be putte in wrytynge by the chauntresse.
        Whan sche cometh aene the secunde tyme, the abbes
     schal examen her, and say to her, as it is expressyd in
|r20 the rewle. Ande so sche schal do, whan sche cometh
     aene the thrydde tyme, rehersynge to her aene, yf nede
     be, the dures and scharpenes of the order.
        Neuertheles, the seyde secunde and thryd comynges



|p83    |r[15]


     aen, ar not to be vnderstonde, of eche person admytted
     to the ere of profe, but of them |r[f.43d] that dwelle fer
     from the monastery, and kepe not the seyd ere in the
     courte withoute. And of them moste of alle, of whos
 |r5 habilite, lyfe, and conuersacion, the couente et
     douteth, wherof they owe to be certyfyed in alwyse, or
     euer they fullych consente into any persone, for in
     thys hangeth alle the weght of the ere of probacion.
     Whiche whan it schal begyn or whan it schall ende, thys
|r10 is lefte to the arbyterment of the abbes.
        If any kepe her ere of profe in the courte with
     outeforth, and be not of power by no mene to pay for
     her borde, skole, and other costes, perteynyng to her
     profession, sche oweth to be founde of the monastery.
|r15 If sche or els |r[f.44a] her frendes, be of power to fynde
     her, it is reson that ei pay for alle her necessaryes,
     and for alle the costes, in the day of her profession,
     purueyng for her bokes, beddynge, profession rynge,
     dyner, offerynge, and suche oer. Whyche may be done
|r20 lawfully, withoute preiudice of the rewle, so that it
     come of ther own fre wylle, withoute any couinaunte
     made tofore aenste the rewle. But et, be they ryche,
     be they pore, that schal entre into thys religion, er
     reguler habyte schal be ordeyned of the couente, of the
|r25 costes of the place.
     Of the instruccion of the novyce before the profession.
        Whan the tyme is come that the |r[f.44b] abbes and couente,
     be fullyche determyned of the day of profession of any
     sustre or sustres, the abbes in conueniente tyme before,



|p84    |r[15]


     schal assygne a sad suster, that longe hathe be experte
     in reguler obseruances, for to enforme them how they
     schal behaue them, in the day of ther profession.
     Assygnyng also another sad suster, for to stonde by
 |r5 and see, and here only, but not to speke but ryght
     lytel, withoute special licence of the abbes.
         Fyrste, they ar to be enformed, how they schal
     come to the chirche dore bare fote, but yf the
     abbes in tyme of grete colde, commaunde otherwyse;
|r10 and there to byde the buschop, reuerently knelyng to
     hym |r[f.44c] whan he cometh, so to pronounce distynctly and
     openly, the wordes of ther professyon, tofore wryten
     in a skrowe.
         Secunde, how they also reuerently and deuoutly,
|r15 knelynge, schall beholde the rede baner, how they schal
     make the sygne of a crosse, in ther skrowes and receyue
     her rynges; how they schal make ther offryng, att the
     auter, enclynynge both before and after, and turne re_ligiously
     to ther former places aene.
|r20     Thryd, how they schal spedyly do of ther seculer
     cloes, and withoute any taryeng, do on ther reguler
     habite, knelyng whan they take it, and stondyng whylste
     they do it vpon them[.]
        Fourth, how they schal festen ther crow*nes |r[f.44d] vpon
|r25 ther veyles.
        Fyfte, how they shal take ther longe veynes, and
     lyeng prostrat say ther Confiteor, whan the buschop
     assygneth hem, with oo voyce togyder, and how they
     schal ryse and receyue our lorde, of the buschops hande,



|p85    |r[15]


     and knele there stylle, tyl Veni creator spiritus be
     ended.
        Sexte, how they shal folow the buschop to e dore,
     where they schal entre, and how they schal knele down,
 |r5 and take hys blyssynge, whan he hath delyvered hem into
     the abbes handes.
        Seuenth, how they schal folow the abbes, into the
     chapter, and receyue the sygne of pece, and how they
     shal behaue them in the freytour, at the table and
|r10 other places.
     Also prouision is to be made or they come in, |r[f.45a] what
     syde they schall kepe, in the chirche, chapter, freytour,
     dortour, and in al other places, that they fynde noo
     thynge, wherof they myght take any euel ensample.
|r15 Of renauncynge of e ere of profe
        Noo renouncynge of the ere of profe, nor any
     bonde of any party to other, is to be made in any wyse,
     but the day goyng before the profession day, or els in
     the selfe profession day, which is moste syker for
|r20 dyuers casuelteys, that myghte falle in the mene tyme.
     For after the renouncynge of both partys regulerly,
     they may aske ther fyndyng of the monastery, laufully as
     longe as they lyue, thof they be neuer professed
     therin. Whiche be longe processe, myght tur*ne |r[f.45b] to
|r25 importable charge to the monastery.
        They therfor enformed of the maner of renoun_cynge,
     and suerte had of the buschops comynge, the
     abbes and couente schal go to e crates in a tyme moste



|p86    |r[15]


     conueniente. And they, that schal be professed, knelyng
     at the wyndowe, than beyng open, the abbes schal say to
     them, be ther many, or be ther but one of them, thus:
     What aske e?
 |r5 The fyrst of them schal answer, saynge in thys wyse:
     I aske in the wey of charite, that I may be receyued
     to lyue with owe in thys holy congregacion, alle the
     dayes of my lyfe. And than yf ther be mo, eche of em
     schal say thus:
|r10    I aske the same for |r[f.45c] myne own parte.
        And than the abbes yf nede be, may reherse com_pendiously,
     what hathe be seyde to them, from the be_gynnynge
     of the ere of profe, concludyng thus at the
     laste ende:
|r15    Doughtres, e moste knowlage owe dewly admitted
     to our ere of profe, and sufficiently proued in the
     same, and that e holde owe fullyche content therwyth.
     Renouncynge it and al other eres of profe, whiche be
     wonte to be had in other religions, within the
|r20 monastery, for entres into thys religion, after the
     tenour of the rewle of saynt sauyour. Promytting,
     for to abyde the day of our profession, and for to
     accepte with*oute |r[f.45d] contradiccion, suche a day as we
     schal assigne owe. And mekly for to obey after our
|r25 power, to the seyd rewle, addicions, and statutes,
     alle and som, lyke as our predecessours haue done to
     fore owe.
       Than sche, or any other suster for her at her
     prayer, schal answer thus, after her skrowe:
|r30   In nomine patris et filii, et spiritus sancti



|p87    |r[15]


     Amen. I. N. N. moued and styrred I hope of god, per_petually
     to serue hym in holy religion, and specially
     in thys religion of saynt sauyour. After my manyfolde
     desyres, and often prayers, to our ryght deuoute and
 |r5 honorable ladyschyp, and to the grete haboundante
     charite of alle my ladyes our sustres |r[f.46a] knowlage me
     of our grete graces, dewly admytted into the ere of
     profe, suche a day of suche a month and suche a ere of
     our lorde, and sufficiently proued in the same after
|r10 the rewle of saynte sauyour and statutes of thys
     monastery. Whiche ere whiche moreouer now passed,
     yf it plese owe to do the same, I accepte for a ere
     of sufficiente probacion, and renounce all and eche
     other probacion, for entres into thys religion, not_withstondyng
|r15 that any costom in other religion, or
     comen lawe, sownde or be into the contrary. And
     wher our reuerent ladyschyp desyreth that I schall
     withoute contradiccion accepte and abyde suche a day
     as e wyl |r[f.46b] assygne me for my profession, with goddys
|r20 grace and our supportacion, I accepte it with al myne
     herte, and promytte to abyde it to my power. Also
     reuerent lady, I purposyng to be a childe of obedience,
     promytte veryly to obey and obserue the seyd rewle,



|p88    |r[15]


     awtentyk declaracion and interpretacion of the same,
     or of any parte therof, addicions, pryuyleges, ordy_nary
     iniunccions, local statutes, and all other or_dynaunces,
     wylfully admytted and resonably approued,
 |r5 by the comen consente of sustres and brethren pro_fessed
     to fore me, wylst I lyue, as ferre as my
     powers wyl stretche. Into wytnes of alle and eche of
     the seyd premisses, I haue made my sygne manuell |r[f.46c] in
     thys presente wrytynge:

|r[sign here]

|r1O Whiche sygne may be made to fore, for lettyng of
     tyme. And yf ther be mo than one, eche of them schal
     say as it is expressed in other writynges aboute the
     renounsyng of the ere of profe.
        And after thys, the abbes schal renounce also
|r15 the seyd ere for her parte sayng thus as wele to one
     as to alle:
        Almyghty godde whyche is endytour of our rewle,
     conferme ow in thys holy purpos. Ande I in the name,
     of oure lord ihesu criste and of hys moste holy moder, our
|r20 lady saynte |r[f.46d] mary, and in the name of the hole con_gregacion
     of sustres and brethren, and in myne own
     name, renounce also the seyd 3ere, and consente into



|p89    |r[15]


     ow, for to receyue ou to be professyd in thys mona_stery
     to morne, but yf any lauful cause of lettynge,
     fal in the mene whyle.
          To the whiche wordes, al the couente schal
 |r5 enclyne, in token that they consente to the same. But
     noo suster schal presume to speke ther moche, withoute
     special licence of the abbes.
       This done, one of them schal say in thys wyse:
       I elde thankynges to god, and to hys blyssed
|r1O moder mary alway virgyn, to saynt birgitte, and to
     oure ryght reuerent ladyschyp, and to the hole con_*gregacion, |r[f.47a]
     of thys monastery. And thys grace by ow
     schewed to me, I mekly accepte.
       If ther be mo, other by and by schal say thus:
|r15 I do the same for myne owne parte. And after
     thys, they schal kesse the scrowe, and with ther
     own handes, delyuer it into the abes handes.



|p90    |r[16]


     Sextenth chapter. Of the obseruaunce aboute, and in
     the day of profession.
        Moreouer the sexteynes schal ordeyne before the
     profession, the bere wi fayre newe erth, and make a
 |r5 crosse thervpon, with a smoth lath |r[f.47b] or with some
     other instrumente made therfor of purpos, at it may
     wele be seyn fer of. And thys bere sche schal sette
     forth at the dore, that it may be borne oute in
     conuenient tyme.
|r10    Also it is gode, that eche person be professed
     in ther own arayment that they vsed in the worlde,
     and not in borowed gere. Neuertheles, thys is left
     to the discrecion of e abbes and general confessour,
     both for the sustres and brethren.
|r15 Of clyppyng of hedes.
        Forthermore, to fore any be presented to the
     buschop, for to be consecrate, ei shal be klypped
     the here by the abbes, after the maner of other
     monyales, vnder thys forme. The abbes and couent as
|r20 many as |r[f.47c] may, folowyng her, schal go to the crates
     the day tofore the profession, after our lady masse,
     or after complen or any other tyme, moste conueniente.
     Wher they schal stonde in order religiously, with al
     maner of sadnes, withoute grete sterynge or noyse,
|r25 that other be edyfyed by ther religious behauynge.
     So that the abbes be in the myddes of the wyndowe,
     and the elder sustres nexte her on every syde. The
     sexteyn schalle brynge forth holy water and a fayre



|p91    |r[16]


     kerchef, with a klene payre of scheres or scisoures.
        And the wyndowe opened, and ther here dressed
     honestly behynde ther hedes, the abbes schal sprynge
     holy water vpon ther hedes, sayng thus, be |r[f.47d] ther
 |r5 many or be ther but one:
        Aqua benedicta sit vobis salus et vita. In no_mine
     patris et filii et spiritus sancti. The couente
     schall answer: Amen.
        And than the abbes schal say eftesones:
|r10 Almghty god to whom e shal nowe be spoused,
     moyster owr sowles with the dewe of hys holy spirite,
     and marke ow with the token of hys swete brennyng
     loue .
        The couente schal answer: Amen.
|r15 And than whylste the abbes clyppeth er hedes,
     the couent shal say syde for syde thys ympne:
        Veni creator spiritus, tretably and distynctly.
     Whiche ended and ther hedes alle clypped, the abbes
     and couente schal say thys preces folowynge: |r[f.48a] The
|r20 abbes:
        Emitte spiritum tuum et creabuntur. The couente:
     Et renouabis faciem terre. The abbesse: Saluam (as)
     fac ancillam (as) tuam (as). The couente: Deus meus
     sperantem (tes) in te. The abbes: Domine exaudi.
|r25 The couent[:] Et clamor. The abbes: Oremus.
        Deus qui corda fidelium sancti spiritus illustra_cione
     docuisti, da nobis in eodem spiritu recta sapere,
     et de eius semper consolacione gaudere. Per christum



|p92    |r[16]


     dominum nostrum. Amen.
        In the day of profession, all the howres schal be
     doon before hygh masse. Ande whan the buschop is
     entred into the brethres quyer, foure sustres assygned
 |r5 by e abbes, schal brynge oute religiously betwe*ne |r[f.48b]
     them in ther handes, the seyd bere, a lytel lefte vp
     from the erth, two before, and two behynde, and sett
     it downe fayre and esyly, before the newe professed
     sustres. Ande inclynacion made towarde the hygh
|r10 auter, they schal turne aene into the monastery,
     the dore to be schet after them. And after the same
     forme they schal brynge it in aene after masse whan
     the seyd sustres be comyned, or whan thys ympne Veni
     creator is bygon and in syngyng.
|r15 Whiche ended, the abbes schal see that e seyd dore
     be sette open to the buschop aenst he schal come to the
     same dore, sche stondyng there with al the couent process_ion
     wyse, the eldeste nexte the dore. And the sustres
     take |r[f.48c] in and the dore schette, the chauntres schal
|r20 begyn thys ympne:
        Sponse iungendo filio. And than all schal go
     to the chapter, procession wyse, the ongest before,
     and the abbes after, with the newe professed sustres
     folowyng her, the chauntres assygnyng them where they
|r25 schal knele before the abbes in myddes of the chapter.
     And the seyd ympn wyth the response Regnum mundi, and
     antem: O iocundissimam ended, the abbes turnyng to
     mageste with al the couente, schal say thys preces
     folowyng in a softe voyce with note: Saluam (as)



|p93    |r[16]


     fac domine ancillam (as) tuam.
     Deus meus sperantem (tes) in te.
     Mitte ei (eis) domine auxilium de sancto. |r[f.48d]
     Et de syon tuere eam (eas)[.] Domine exaudi
 |r5 oracionem meam. Et clamor meus ad te veniat. Oremus.
     Deus qui famulam (as) tuam (as) a seculi vanitate
     conuersam (as), ad superne vocacionis accendis
     amorem, pectori (bus) illius (arum) purificando
     illabere, et graciam qua in te perseueret (rent)
|r10 infunde, vt proteccionis tue munita (te) presidio,
     quod te donante promisit (erunt), te iuuante im_plere
     valeat (ant), et sue (arum) promissionis
     (num) executrix (ces) effecta (te), ad ea que
     perseuerantibus in te, dignatus es promittere,
|r15 pertingere mereatur (antur). Per christum dominum
     nostrum. Amen.
        Thys done and al the couente sette, the abbes
     may say to them what sche wyll. And than the
     chauntres |r[f.49a] schall lede them to e abbes to take the
|r20 token of pees or kysse of charite, and afterwarde to
     the pryores and to al other sustres, fyrst at one syde
     and than at other, and after make them to knele aene
     where they kneled to fore. So that bothe the evers
     and takers of the seyd token of pece, schal take eche
|r25 other by the handes, a lytle enclynyng ther hedes eche
     to other, but to the abbes, they schal knele down to



|p94    |r[16]


     the grounde. Noo speeche is to be had there but of
     the souereyne, outake thes wordes:
        e be wellcome;
     and:
 |r5  I thanke owe.
     Of an exortacion to them.
        Neuertheles, yf e tyme wyll suffise it, the
     abbes before the seyd kysse of pece, or |r[f.49b] els after,
     may exorte them in thys wyse, saynge thus:
|r10 Loo doughtres, nowe remembreth what e haue
     take vpon owe, and see, that lyke as e haue chaunged
     our seculer habite, so e nowe chaunge worldly maners
     and customs into exercise of spiritual vertues,
     castynge away the olde garment of synne, and doynge
|r15 vpon ow the habite of mire lord ihesu christe. And
     principally labour e to come to the begynnyng of
     our lordes rewle, that is very mekenes, pure chastyte,
     and wylful pouerte, as it schal be tolde vnto owe
     by our lordes grace more expresly, another tyme.
|r20 Whyche rewle wyll, that thes eghte dayes, e schal
     not be arted to |r[f.49c] any streytnes of the order, but
     that e in the quyer stonde loweste. Whiche I wyl at
     e lowly obserue, and at e sytte lowest in the
     freytour, and kepe silence to alle, excepte to me
|r25 and to the suster, vnder whos gouernaunce e schal be
     assygned to be, but yf I eue owe special licence to
     speke. And thys is ordeyned to be kepte among vs,
     that e scholde the more bysyly study to lerne our
     reguler obseruaunces, wherto e muste be streytly
|r30 bounde, after the eght days of our profession. Be



|p95    |r[16]


     e erfor, the gode discipules, of our lord ihesu
     christe, meke, softe, paciente and obediente, at so
     e may fele the swetnes of religion, and be confermed
     in all gode werkes. Amen.      |r[f.49d]
 |r5 After thys, the abbes schal assygne them to suche
     a maystres or maystresses, that by ensample of gode
     lyfe, kan and may enforme them and teche them the order
     to the helth of ther sowles, by thes eght dayes and
     after, into tyme they be discharged of them aene in
|r10 the ful chapter. Whiche, withoute any contradiccion
     or excusacion schal mekly obey to the precepte of ther
     souereyne, and thes eght dayes they schal stonde by
     ther discipulesses in the chirche, and sytte by them
     at the table, and go with hem or nygh them in pro_cessions.
|r15 So that eche of them schal enforme suche as
     be assygned to them in reguler obseruaunces and holy
     disciplynes and doctrynes, charitably and tendably, as
     it |r[f.50a] is accordyng to euery persone, and as nede re_quyreth,
     after the commaundement of the souereyne.
|r20 Neuertheles al thes viiite dayes, they may be vnder
     the rewle of one maystres yf the abbes wyl it so be.



|p96    |r[17]


     Seuententh chapter. How the nouyces schal be astricte
     to kepe the order after the eght day.
        Eghte dayes fullyche complete, of euery profession,
     the chapter bell schal be ronge, and the chapter holde
 |r5 as it is wonte yf it be thursday. Or els, after the
     ryngynge of the seyd bel*le, |r[f.50b] al the couente gadered
     togyder in the chapter, the sustres newe professyd at
     e commaundmente of the abbes, schal be brought in, by
     one of ther maystresses before the abbes, fyrst in_clynyng
|r10 to her, and than knelynge before her in the
     myddes, as they be taught and assygned by ther gyde.
     To whom the abbes schal say thus:
        Doughtres, e schal vnderstonde, it is vsed
     amonge vs of longe and laudable custom, and also
|r15 ordeynd and streytly enioyned by our diocesan
     buschop of london, that euery professe, the eght day
     after the day of ther profession, schal make obedience
     to ther souereyne, promyttynge to obey feythfully to
     her in al thyng after |r[f.50c] the rewle, and to kepe e
|r20 statutes of the place and al other thynges, as ther
     predecessours haue done tofore them.
        They heryng thys, the fyrst of them, or some
     other suster in her name, schal open the register and
     make her obedience in suche maner of wyse as folowith,
|r25 or any other lyke maner:
        In nomine patris et filii et spiritus sancti
     Amen. I. N. N. after the fyrst profession suche a



|p97    |r[17]


     suster in nomber, professed in the order of saynte
     sauyour, suche a day of suche a monthe, suche a ere
     of our lorde, and suche a profession after the fyrste,
     by suche a buschop or suffrigan, knowlage me dewly
 |r5 admytted to the ere of profe, and solempnly professed
     after lauful renoun*cynge  |r[f.50d] of the seyd ere, after the
     rewle of saynte sauyour, and statutes of thys monastery.
     Therfor I holdynge me fullich contente of al the pre_mysses,
     promytte to the abbes of this monastery, and
|r10 to thy successours, me to kepe obedience after the
     rewle of saynt austyn and constitucions of saynte bir_gitte.
     Acceptyng, allowyng, and also admittynge, the
     popes letters or bulles, and namely that bulle, whiche
     amonge vs is kleped Bulla reformatoria with other
|r15 autentyk wrytynges not discrepante nor discordynge to
     the seyd bulle[.] Acceptynge also, allowyng and
     admyttynge, the addicions addyd to the seyd rewle,
     priuyleges, ordynary iniunccions, |r[f.51a] local statutes,
     laudable customes, decrees, and al other ordinaunces
|r20 after the forme expressyd in the fourtenth lefe of
     thys register, wylfully admytted, and resonably ap_roued,
     by the comen consent of sustres and brethren



|p98    |r[17]


     professed tofore me. Bryndynge myselfe wylfully and
     not constryned, veryly to obserue all the seyd pre-,
     mysses to my power to the dethe. Into the witnesse wherof,
     I delyuer and betake to our reuerent moderhode, thys
 |r5 wrytyng, writen at myne instaunce in thys comen
     registre, and marked with my sygne manuell, the viiite
     day after the day of my profession, in the ere of our
     lorde aboue seyde:
     And her sygne made |r[f.51b] in the seyde register, sche schal
|r10 kesse the boke and ley it open in the abbes lappe with
     bothe handes.
        To whom the abbes, havyng that sustres handes
     ioyned togyder betwene her handes, schal say thus:
        And I admytte thyne obedience In nomine patris et
|r15 filii, et spiritus sancti Amen.
        And than that suster schal fal down to kysse the
     abbes fete, whiche in nowyse sche schal suffer, but
     rather put down her ryght hande, that sche may kesse
     that.
|r20    If ther be mo, eche of them schal say as it is
     writen in the register, and do as dyd the fyrst suster,
     eche after other, alone by themselfe.
     Of an exhortacion.
         Whan they all haue made ther obedience, they
|r25 schal knele aene before the abbes, and |r[f.51c] than the
     abbes or elles another suster at her commaundement,
     schal say thys lytle exhortacion folowynge:



|p99    |r[17]


        Ryght dere sustres, for as moche, as e be now
     astricte to the obseruaunce and kepyng of the order
     and rewle, as other sustres professed before owe, e
     schal vnderstonde, that the begynnyng of our sauyours
 |r5 rewle, is veray mekenes, pure chastite, and wylful
     pouerte.
        Very mekenes, is to drede god euery howre, and
     not to loue proper wylle. To subdew ou to the
     obedience of our eldres for god, and not to grudge
|r10 aenste contrarious thynges, thof they be commaunded.
     To hyde none euel thougtes nor euell dedes, but to
     confesse them to our gostly fa*ders |r[f.51d] yf they be
     preuy, and also proclame them in dewe place and tyme,
     yf they be open. Also to be contente with vylenes and
|r15 abieccion, and to holde ow more viler and lower than
     other, not only with the tunge, but also to beleue the
     same veryly, inwarde in the sowle. To do nothyng, but
     that the comen rewle commaundeth, or that the gode
     ensample of our eldres enforme owe. Lernyng of one
|r20 mekenes, of anoer pacience, of another deuocion, of
     another discrete abstinence, of another contynence, of
     another to kepe streyte sylence. Also, to be stylle,
     tyl e be asked to speke, and to speke fewe wordes wi
     sadnes, and not to be lyght of laughter, but that e
|r25 schew lowlynes |r[f.52a] in worde and dede, and thynke in al
     places that e schal be presented to the dome of god,
     sayng with the meke publycan: Non sum dignus oculos



|p100    |r[17]


     leuare in celum. I am not wordy to lefte vp myne eyn
     to heuen.
        Pure chastite stondeth not only in body but also
     in sowle. For sche is not chaste in the syghte of
 |r5 god, at hath that one withoute that other, nor the
     chastyte of suche one is plesaunte to god.
        Wylfull pouerte also stondeth not only in
     forsakyng of worldly riches, but also un forsakyng of
     wyll to haue any worldly riches, worchyppes or digny_teys,
|r10 aenst the wyll of god and ordynaunce of the
     rewle.
        Moreouer, for e be nowe admytted to |r[f.52b] knowe the
     secrecyes of our chapter, e shal vnderstonde, that
     e chapter is an howse of counsell and confession,
|r15 where the secrets of the monastery and of the chapter
     arn to be treted, and defautes proclamed and corrected,
     lyke as the trespas asketh. Haue e warenes therfor,
     that e comen nothyng that is seyde or done here, or in
     any other place of the monastery by wey of counsell,
|r20 to any other, seculer or religious, but only to our
     sustres professed, or to our confessoures yf it
     longe to our consciences. And that ette ryght
     warely, leste e deme owre souereyne, and haply
     cause other to grudge aenst her by our speche.
|r25 Wherfor late the drede of god be our gyde, in alle
     |r[f.52c] our wordes and dedes, for yf it be preuyd at any
     open the secrecyes of the chapter, she is to be
     sequestred erfrom, tyl we thynke her wordy to be
     kalled aene, besyde oer paynes. Our lorde ihesu



|p101    |r[17]


     therfor, eue ow grace to eschew al perelles. Amen.
        After thys the abbes schal assygne hem a maystres
     or maystresses, after the forme expressed tofore in
     the sextenth chapter of thys boke; and than the
 |r5 chauntres at the byddyng of e abbes, schal sette ech
     of them in ther order in the chapter, chirch and other
     places, after the precepte of the rewle.
        Neuertheles, neyther the abbes, nor none other
     suster schal be bound to say the seyd exhor*tacion |r[f.52d]
|r10 always, but after ther discrecion and disposicion,
     and after the tyme eueth, and mater requyreth.



|p102    |r[18]


     Eghtenth chapter. Of dyvyne seruyse and obseruaunces
     therin.
        Seth euery religion is therfor ordeyned princi_pally,
     that dyuyne seruyse schold be dewly contynued
 |r5 in holy chirche, therfor it is acordyng, that it be
     performed in suche wyse, that not only the doers therof,
     but also the herers be edyfyed therby. Wherfor pat
     dyuyne seruyse may be contynued in is religion, after
     a dewe |r[f.53a] order and forme, the sustres schal haue ther
|r10 matens after the brethres matens, ther euensong after
     e brethres euensonge, complen after complen, so that
     nerhande, er be neuer cesynge. Ther songe schal be
     sadde, sober, ande symple, without brekyng of notes and
     gay relesynge, with alle mekenes and deuocion; but
|r15 organs schal ei neuer haue none. Ther psalmody schal
     be dystyncte and open; and al thynge schal be mesured
     and moderyd after discrecion. In the quyer, all schall
     be as angels, enclynge togyder, rysynge togyder, knelyng
     togyder, stondynge, turnynge, and syttyng togyder, al
|r20 after oo forme, goynge and comynge togyder. |r[f.53b] In
     openyng also, and schettyng of bokes, turnyng of leues,
     leftynge vp and puttynge down of stalles, sayng of ther
     bedes or deuocions, and in al other suche thynges doynge,
     they schal haue warenes of any grete sounde or noyse
|r25 makynge, by whisperyng, syghyng, or sobbyng, or ratlynge
     of bedes. Wherby any other myght be unrested and
     resonably take occasion for to deme them of ypocrisy
     or of any vnsadnes. Ther syght also, sylence, and



|p103    |r[18]


     sygnes, they shal kepe moste of all there, and not go
     oute tyl the seruyse be ended, withoute a resonable
     cause not feyned, end by licence or commaundement of
     her that is president there for the tyme. There also
 |r5 none shal vse to spytte ouer the |r[f.53c] stalles, nor in any
     other place wher any suster is wonte to pray, but yf it
     anone be done oute, for defoylyng of ther clothes[.]
     If any fall gretly into coughynge or bledynge, or
     habounde with flewme, sche shal go oute be licence of
|r10 the presidente, and the passion cesed, and place made
     clene, come aene. So that none feyne any cause to go
     oute, nor make no lenger taryeng withoute than very
     nede requireth.
        To dyuyne seruise, none schal come withoute her
|r15 hole habite honestly vpon her, as it is expressyd
     tofore in the secunde chapter, her mantel buttened
     with a butten of tre after the rewle, nor et to the
     speche of seculers withoute or within, |r[f.53d]
     Of inclynacions.
|r20     As ofte as they enter the quyer, they schal
     deuoutly enclyne, in the place therto assygned. Not
     bekkyng with the hede and lyghtly sterte forth; but
     sadly be leyser with dewe reuerence and worchyp,
     gadryng togyder the sydes of ther mantelles before
|r25  them with bothe handes, that they fle not abrode,
     hauyng the ryghte hande in crosse wyse ouer the lefte.
     Not bowyng ther bakkes rownde, lyke a bowe bente,
     but hauynge ther scholdres and lendes euen streght
     and playne oute, enclynynge so lowe, that ther handes



|p104    |r[18]


     withoute violent stretchyng oute, may towche both knees.
     Whiche is to be obserued whansoeuer they enclyne in ther
     man*telles, |r[f.54a] so that yf ther be two togyder, they
     schal enclyne togyder and turne face to face as ofte as
 |r5 they turne bakwarde after ther inclinacion. Ande so
     they schal do whan they enclyne withoute mantelles, saue
     than they schal kepe ther handes crosse wyse in er
     cowle sleues.
        And thes be the tymes and places that ei schal
|r10 enclyne inne, and the thynges wherto ei schal enclyne.
     That is to say, in e chirche, chapter, and freytour,
     as ofte as they come in or oute, namely before and
     after conuentual actes; and in the quyer, as ofte as
     they come in, or go oute of ther stalles, and also
|r15 they schal enclyne in the myddes, whan they go from
     one syde to |r[f.54b] another of any of e seyd places. Also
     they schal enclyne profoundly to the hygh auter, by
     cause of the sacramente beynge there, and to our lady
     auter, and to the crucifixe, and to the ymage of our
|r20 lady, as ofte as they passe by, namely in the chirche;
     and also to the names of ihesu and maria, as ofte as
     they here em pronounced any whereamonge the couent
     with all devocion and reuerence, sytte ei, stonde
     they, or which wey that ever they turne.
|r25   Also whan they haue made ther inclinacion in
     the quyer to the este, they schal turne them and
     enclyne to the abbes, both inwarde and outwarde the
     quyer. Also whan any suster goeth before another in
     the quyer, or in |r[f.54c] any other streyte place, sche schal
|r30 bowe the hede and lefte vp the hande, in maner askyng



|p105    |r[18]


     leue to go by her. To whom other schall bowe ther hedes
     aene, in token of grauntyng of leve.
     Of late comers to the quyer
     And for dyuyne seruyse is to be preferred before
 |r5 al other thyng, therfor whan they here the ryngyng
     therto, they schal come to chirche betymes, that they
     mow make redy ther hertes to god before the begynnynge
     as they mow e more dewly prayse hym. If any come
     after Deus in adiutorium is bygonne, sche schal enclyne
|r10 and go to her place. If Gloria patri be bygonne, sche
     schal  enclyne tyl sicut erat, and an go to her stalle,
     withoute sygne of the president. |r[f.54d] If any come whan e
     ympne is bygonne or after, sche schal enclyne, tyl the
     president make a sygne to ryse, and than go to her stall
|r15 or to another place, wher none other suster be lette of
     her office. Whiche is to be obserued also, yf the
     office of our lady masse be bygon, so that all suche
     must proclame and telle the causes of ther late comynge,
     in dewe place and tyme[.] Suche as ofte come late
|r20 withoute resonable cause, schal be more scharply cor_rected
     [.] Neuertheles, come any neuer so late, whan
     ther is litel helpe in the quier, they schal enclyne
     and lyghtly go to ther place, thof the president make
     no sygne, helpyng forth what they may, and after that
|r25 seruyse or houre, they schal |r[f.55a] say to the place wher
     they began, and proclame and confesse ther late comynge,
     whan they se ther tyme. So et that after e thryd
     psalme is ended of any of the smale howres, none schall
     enter into the stalles but in tyme of grete nede.



|p106    |r[18]


     Of faylers in dyuyne seruyse.
        If any fayle in redyng or syngynge in the quyer,
     sche schal as ofte as it is perseyved of other, knele
     down towarde the auter, whilst they synge at other syde,
 |r5 namely in psalmody, toche the grounde with her hande,
     knokke herselfe on the breste, rise and enclyne also
     to the auter, and than synge forth as sche dyd before,
     havyng alway a warenes, that the knelyng down for one
     defaute |r[f.55b] be not cause of mo. Whiche et defautes
|r10 also, sche most proclame whan tyme cometh, and take
     correccion for them, namely yf the defaute be so grete,
     that al the quyer is distracte therby[.] But none
     schal knele down at lectrones tylle the lesson or verse
     be ended, nor in any procession goynge. Sche that wyl
|r15 not knele downe whan sche fayleth, seynt benette sayth
     sche is to proude, for sche wyl not meke herself in the
     presence of other, wherfor sche is to be chastysed the
     more scharply in the chapter.
        Neuertheles, aged and very feble, schal do in thys
|r20 obseruaunce and other lyke as the abbes assygneth hem,
      the causes fyrst known, openly in the chapter, that
      none oc*casion |r[f.55c] of euel be mynystred to other.



|p107    |r[19]


     Nyententh chapter   Of obseruaunce at matens and laudes.
        Aboute the laste ende of the brethres matens e
     tapers lyght, the abbes or priores in her absence, or

     els the ebdomadary in bothe ther absence, schal make
 |r5 the termynacion, smytyng her ryght hande vpon the deske
     or a boke, not ouer harde, but in suche a mene as al
     the quyer may here it. At the whyche sygne, al the
     quyer schal knele down and stylly say one pater |r[f.55d]
     noster, one Aue maria, and oo crede, eche by themselfe
|r10 alone. And whan sche maketh another sygne with her
     hande, as sche dyd tofore, alle must ryse and stonde
     turned to the este, enclynyng and makyng the sygne of
     the crosse of ihesu in ther forehedes and brestes,
     prayng hym inwardly, that ther seruyse may be accep_table
|r15 to hym and to hys blyssed moder[.] And thys is
     to be obserued before euery houre, outake the sayng of
     the crede, which is not seyd comenly but before matens.
        As sone therfor as the brethren, cese of syngynge,
     the ebdomadary schall begynne: Dignare me laudare te,
|r20 turnyng to the este with all the quyer, answe*ryng |r[f.56a] to
     the same, and to Domine labia, and Deus in adiutorium.
        At Gloria patri, al schal enclyne face to face, as
     ofte as it is had, outake in processions, rysyng vp
     aene at Sicut erat and thanne stonde quyer to quyer
|r25 tylle Alleluia. Saue whyls they synge Laus tibi domine,
     they schal enclyne to the ende therof, quyer to quyer.
        From the begynnyng of the Inuitatory, into Gloria
     patri after Venite, they schal stonde turned to the
     este, and than they schall turne quyer to quyer into
|r30 the laste verse of the ympne, than enclynyng face to



|p108  [19]


     face, stondyng vp and turnynge to the este, at Amen[.]
     Whiche is to be obserued at the laste verse of euery
     ympne in |r[f.56b] the ere.
        The secunde, and thryd, antemes at matens, schal
 |r5 be bygon of them that be tabled vnto them. But the
     fyrst antem, and al other antems at laudes, prime and
     houres euensonge and complen, schal be bygon by the
     ebdomadary. Sche that begynneth any antem, schal turne
     to the este, and enclyne the same wey whan sche hath
|r10 done, but e quyer schal stonde face to face. Saue
     whan the ebdomadary begynneth her antems, al schal
     turne to the este as sche doeth.
        At the entunyng of euery psalme, the quyer schal
     stonde face to face, outake be bygynners in hygh dowble
|r15 festes.
        In the psalmody, the quyer schal sytte one psalme
     and stonde another, |r[f.56c] begynnynge ever with the fyrst
     psalme. So that the fyrst psalme entuned to the myddes
     of the fyrst verse, they schal sytte down, rysyng aene
|r20 at Gloria patri, and inclynyng as it is seyd before,
     and stondyng quyer to quyer whylst they synge the
     antemes after the psalmes.
        Aboute the myddes of the thryd antem, the sustres
     that schal synge the versicle, schal go oute of ther
|r25 stalles religiously, turnyng to the este, with al the
     quyer, whylst they synge it at the deske, enclynynge
     both before and after. Whiche also is to be obserued
     of all sustres as ofte as they synge or rede any thynge
     at the deske or lettryne.



|p109    |r[19]


        The answer of the versycle ended, |r[f.56d] al the quyer
     schal enclyne to the este, like as they stonde in the
     answer of the versicle. And than they schal turne
     quyer to quyer and say Pater noster and Aue maria
 |r5 enclynynge.
        Whyche done, the ebdomadary, schall stonde
     vpryght wyth al the quyer, and turnynge all to the
     este, sche schal begynne Et ne nos, with Precibus
     et meritis, as it scheweth in the ordynall. If the
|r10 abbes be presente, al must conforme to her.
        They that schal rede the lessons at the lettryne,
     schal after Iube domine benedicere enclyne to the este,
     tyl the benediccion be endyd. And the quyer answeryng
     Amen, before the first lesson, anone they must sytte
|r15 down withoute |r[f.57a] any taryeng, or euer the lesson
     begynne, that the reder may so moche the better be
     herde of alle. Ande they muste sytte styll, tyl
     Gloria patri of the last response.
        Neuertheles, tho sustres that schal synge the
|r20 verses of the responses at the lettrin, schal go oute
     of ther stalles religiously, aboute the myyddes of
     euery response. And for they may not enclyne with
     the quyer whyle they synge Gloria patri of the thryd
     response, they schal enclyne before, while e quyer
|r25 syngeth the repete. Whiche is to be obserued in all
     other responses that be songen with Gloria patri, and
     in al other thynges wherof the syngers may not con_ueniently
     enclyne with the quyer.



|p110    |r[19]


        Atte begyn*nynge |r[f.57b] of Te deum laudamus, al the
     quyer schal stonde to the este with the ebdomadary
     that begynneth it. And at Te eternum patrem, they
     schal stonde quyer to quyer, into the laste ende of
 |r5 the psalme. Saue at Sanctus, sanctus, sanctus, dominus
     deus sabaoth, and at Non horruisti virginis vterum,
     and in thys verse Te ergo quesumus, al schal enclyne
     face to face, and atte thys worde In eternum they
     schal turne to the este, and so stonde tylle Gloria
|r10 patri after Deus in adiutorium at laudes.
        Whan Te deum is not had, they schal in stede
     therof synge thys psalme: Miserere mei deus knelynge
     quyer to quyer, as it is specifyed in the ordynall.
        Atte laudes, alle thynge schal folowe the obser_uances
|r15 ex*pressed |r[f.57c] at euensonge in the xxiiiiti
     chapter of thys boke. Saue in the laste ende of thys
     psalme, Benedicite, they schal enclyne quyer to quyer,
     while they synge thys verse: Benedicamus patrem,
     rysyng vp aene, at Benedictus es domine.
|r20  And whan e sustres haue ended er matens, the
     breren schal begyn ther prime.



|p111    |r[20]


     Twentyeth chapter[.] Of pryme, lady masse, and houre
     of teer.
         Whan the brethren haue ended ther houre of teer,
     the sustres schall begynne ther pryme, |r[f.57d] outake wyt_sonday,
 |r5 kepyng ther obseruances as they dyd in lyke
     thynges at matens. So that the executrice of the
     seruyse, schall begynne the antems at pryme and
     howres; and they that synge the versicles of the same
     day, schal synge Ihesu criste, and responses of the
|r10 seyd howres atte the lettryn, turnyng to the este with
     the quyer.
        After pryme, schal folowe masse of our lady. At
     the begynnynge wherof, alle schal stonde quyer to
     quyer, saue att thes wordes: Salue sancta parens, all
|r15 schal knele downe and deuoutly enclyne, at bothe tymes,
     doyng worschyp and reuerence to the moder of god,
     rysynge vp aene att Enixa puerpera. The two
     begynners that be*gynne |r[f.58a] masse, or any thyng els in
     myddes of the quyer, schall at eche inclynacion enclyne
|r20 to the este, and sytte to the este, whiche way that
     euer the quyer stonde, sytte or enclyne, kepynge er
     inclynacion before Gloria patri, as it is seyde before
     at matens.
        Also the quyer shal stonde quyer to quyer whyls
|r25 they synge the Kyrye; and atte begynnyng of Gloria in
     excelsis, they shal turne to the este, and aene
     quyer to quyer at Et in terra, so enclynynge at
     Adoramus te, and at Suscipe deprecationem nostram.
        Saue whyles they synge Amen, and as ofte as they
|r30 say Et cum spiritu tuo, or answer the preste or dekon



|p112    |r[20]


     of any other thynge in the mas*se, |r[f.58b] they schal turne
     to the este.
        Att the fyrst collectes they schal enclyne quyer
     to quyer, stondynge vp aene to the este at Qui tecum
 |r5 viuit; but in the memoryes they schal knele down
     lenyng to ther deskes, and stondyng vp at Qui tecum as
     it is seyd before.
        From the begynnynge of the pystle into the se_quence
     be ended, they schal sytte in ther stalles,
|r10 saue the sustres that schal synge the verse of the
     grael and verse of Alleluia, schal synge them stondynge
     at the lettren.
        Also from septuagesym into ester, thys tracte
     Gaude maria schal be songe at lettren, and is prose
|r15 Inuiolata in the quyer, syde for syde syttynge. But
     at thes wordes: O, |r[f.58c] maria, O benigna, O maria, al
     muste knele down, syttyng vp aene at Que sola. The
     prose, or sequence ended, they schal turne to the
     auter, so enclynyng at Gloria tibi domine whan the
|r20 preste enclyneth, makyng a token of the crosse in er
     forhedes and vpon ther brestes as the maner is.
        Whan credo in vnum deum is bygonne, they schal
     turne aene quyer to quyer, so knelyng down at thes
     wordes Et incarnatus, and rysyng vp aene at Et
|r25 resurrexit.
        The offertory they schal synge quyer to quyer
     stondyng, and knele down after, lenynge to ther
     deskes[.] But from Per omnia into Sanctus, they
     schal stonde to the este, so enclynyng at thes |r[f.58d]
|r30 wordes Gracias agamus domino deo nostro.



|p113    |r[20]


        From the ende of the preface into Benedictus, they
     schal stonde quyer to quyer, enclynyng so at the fyrst
     Sanctus, wherof the begynners schal enclyne before they
     begynne it. And the fyrst Osanna in excelsis ended,
 |r5 they schal knele down, into Pater noster, begynnyng
     Benedictus euermore at the leuacion of e sacramente.
     Saue whan it is sine regimine chori amonge the brethren,
     they schal synge it forth immediatly with the Sanctus,
     turnyng to be este, and not abyde the seyd leuacion.
|r10 As in al feries and festes of thre lessons, outake the
     thre commemoracions, and certeyn festes in ester tyme.
        At the begynnyng of |r[f.59a] the pater noster, they schal
     ryse, and enclyne quyer to quyer; but they schal synge
     Sed libera nos a malo, stondyng to the este.
|r15 Also, they schal synge the thre Agnus quyer to
     quyer, turnynge to the este aene at the ende of e
     thryd, and face to face whyls they synge e comen.
        At the laste colectes they shal kepe the same
     obseruaunces they dyd at the fyrst colectes, saue at
|r20 the laste colecte of alle, the terminacion schal be
     made, that the sustres may say ther Pater noster
     before ther howre of teer, stondynge to the este at
     Qui tecum viuit as it is seyd before. But after Deo
     gracias, they schal knele down aene, into the blyssyng
|r25 of mas*se |r[f.59b] be ouen, and seynte iohn gosbel ended,
     saynge .iii. pater noster and iii. Aues for the pees,
     towarde the este.
        After the seyd gosbel is ended, they schal anone



|p114    |r[20]


     forwith, outake on saturdayes, begynne ther howre of
     teer, and procede with dewe obseruaunce expressed
     tofore at pryme.
     Of comenyng
 |r5    Whan any shal be comenyd, they schal come togyder
     religiously, and at the assignement of the preste, say
     ther Confiteor togyder ones, for as many as schal be
     comened at one ceson, be it in, or after any masse.
     And the absolucion ouen, they schal ryse and knele at
|r10 the comenyng wyndowe togyder as many as may religiously,
     enclynyng bothe before and after ther co*menyng |r[f.59c].
        The houre of teer ended, ei schal make ther in_clynacions,
     and go in procession wyse to the graue,
     two and two togyder the ongest before. And the abbes,
|r15 or priores, or president in her absence, stondyng at
     the graue, and eldest sustres nexte vnto her on euery
     syde, sche schal with two fyngres take oute a lytel
     erth, begynnyng thys psalme: De profundis, her own
     syde sayng with her, and that oer syde answeryng face
|r20 to face, so enclynyng at Gloria patri and whyle the
     abbes sayth the collecte: Domine sancte pater, with In
     nomine patris.
        After thys e abbes schal say: Benedicite. The
     couente schal answer: Dominus. And than e chaun*{_}tres |r[f.59d]
|r25 schal rede the obites, yf ther be any in the
     martilage on the morne. Whiche redde, the abbes say
     thus:
     Anima eius, or anime eorum or earum, et anime



|p115    |r[20]


     omnium fidelium defunctorum, per misericordiam ihesu
     christi in pace requiescant. The couente schal answer
     Amen[.] And than silence is lowsed and the sustres
     may take ther veynes, and proclame er defautes, or
 |r5 els by lycence of the abbes or president go take er
     myxstom.



|p116    |r[21]


     Capitulum xxi.
        Of the seuen psalmes it schal be schewed in the
     nyen and twenty chapter of thys boke. Whan the
     brethren haue ended ther houre of sexte, the sustres
 |r5 schal go forth with theres; and whan the sustres
     haue ended ther houre of sexte, the breren |r[f.60a] schal
     begyn hygh masse.



|p117    |r[22-23]


     Capitulum xxii, xxiii.
        The obseruaunces at the autyrs longeth to the
     brethren and not to the sustres.
        Moreouer, whan the couente is in any conuentual
 |r5 acte, none schal presume of her own hede to go oute to
     se any sacrynge at any auter; but they schal kepe ther
     wonte obseruaunce, or els knele down yf it be in the
     quyer, and se our lorde in ther sowles, lokynge vpon
     ther bokes, that no defaute be made, in redyng, or
|r10 syngynge[.] For god loueth more to be worchypped and
     seyn with the eyen of the soule, than with the eyen of
     the body, sayng our lorde: veri adoratores, adorabunt
     deum in spiritu et veritate.
        After the |r[f.60b] brethres houre of none, the sustres
|r15 schal procede with theres, and withoute any longe
     taryeng after at, all schal go to mete.
     Of bodyly disciplines.
        Euery fryday in the ere, whan it is sine regimine
     chori amonge the breren, outake cristemas eue, and
|r20 from thens into e vtas of purificacion of our lady,
     and from estren into e vtas of corpes christi, and
     euery wensday of lente whan the brethren say of the
     fery, ande after the passage of any suster or brother,
     and on al soule day and other tymes accostomed or
|r25 assygned by the abbes, the dortour bell schal be
     tolled, and the sustres schal take bodyly dysciplyne
     in dewe tyme and place, after the forme expres*syd |r[f.60c]
     before in the secunde chapter, eche knelyng arewe in
     ther order. And in the tyme of disciplyne, the eb_domadary
|r30 or another suster, schal say this preces



|p118    |r[22]


     folowyng, the couente answerynge: Psalmus: Miserere
     mei deus. Psalmus: Deus misereatur. Psalmus: De
     Profundis. So that eche psalme be seyd with Gloria
     patri, and Aue maria. And after the laste, they
 |r5 schal say thys antem Ne reminiscaris, with Kyrieleyson,
     Christeleyson, Kyrieleison. Pater noster. Aue maria.
     Et ne nos. Ostende nobis. Ora pro nobis sancta dei
     genetrix. Peccauimus cum patribus. Domine non secun_dum.
     Ne memineris iniquitatum[.] Adiuua nos deus[.]
|r10 Oremus pro fratribus. Pro cuncto populo. |r[f.60d] Anime
     fundatorum. Domine exaudi oracionem meam. Oremus.
     Exaudi quesumus domine supplicium preces. Deus qui
     proprium est misereri semper et parcere, suscipe
     deprecacionem. Deus qui caritatis[.] Fidelium deus
|r15 omnium[.] Anime fundatorum nostrorum[.] And they
     that eue the disciplyne schal cese at pater noster
     and say it knelyng as it is sette before in the
     seuenth chapter, begynnynge aene at Et ne nos. Ande
     they muste moder be disciplyne in suche wyse, that
|r20 they may go ones aboute before the Pater noster and
     ones after.
        If any suster for any cause resonable, may not
     take her disciplyne, she schal say the seyd preces
     alone or with a felawe wher sche wyll. |r[f.61a] But whan
|r25 the abbes, in tyme of grete colde, or for any other
     resonable cause, wyl pardon the sustres of ther
     discyplynes that they schal none take, et they schal
     say the seyd preces vnder the schorte veyne togyder
     in the chapter, but they schal not bare ther scholdres.



|p119    |r[24]


     Foure and twentyeth chapter. Of obseruaunce at euen_song.
 
        Aboute the last ende of the brethres euensonge,
     e sustres schal make ther termynacion, and say ther
 |r5 Pater noster and Aue maria as ei |r[f.61b] dyd before matens,
     but withoute a Crede. And alle stondyng vp quyer to
     quier, the ryght syde schal fyrst enclyne profoundly
     to that other, saynge Aue maria and Indulgete nobis.
     And in the mene tyme, the lefte syde stondynge vp
|r10 rite, schal eue devoute audience to the ryghte syde;
     and so muste the ryght syde do, afterwarde to e
     lefte. Thys doon, and the brethres euensonge all
     ended, they schal begynne ther euensonge, as ther
     ordynall scheweth, turnynge to the este at ende of
|r15 the antem after the psalmes.
        And the chapter ended wyth Deo gracias, they
     schal turne quyer to quyer, so stondynge whyle they
     synge e |r[f.61c] response whan ther is any. But whyle the
     verse is in syngynge, they schall sytte, kepynge ther
|r20 obseruaunce at Gloria patri, at ympne, and at the
     versicle, as it is expressed tofore at matens.
        At magnificat, they schall turne quyer to quyer,
     stondyng vpryghte, lytel or nothyng lenyng with ther
     bakkes or armes to the stalles. And so they owe to
|r25 do at Nunc dimittis, Te deum, and Benedictus.
        From the ende of the antems after the seyd
     psalmes into the ende of euensonge and complen,
     matens, and laudes, they schal stonde to the este,
     but yf it be in the orysones or collectes. For than
|r30 they schal enclyne quyer to quy*er |r[f.61d], stondynge to



|p120    |r[24]


     the este aene at Qui tecum viuit, whiche is to be
     obserued in all orysons seyd in the quyer thorow the
     ere with note.
        Neuertheles, sche that executeth the seruise,
 |r5 schal stonde styl in her stall to the este, saue atte
     begynnynge of thys antem: Aue maria, and from thens
     into the laste ende of euery houre in the ere, al
     moste reverently and deuoutly knele down, enclynyng
     also to is name Maria.
|r10    Also after evensonge, matens, and after euery
     houre, the abbes, or the ebdomadary in her absence,
     schal say thys litel prayer: Anime fundatorum
     nostrorum et anime famulorum famularumque tuarum, et
     omnium fidelium defunctorum, |r[f.62a] per misericordiam
|r15 ihesu christi in pace requiescant. The couente schal
     answer Amen, also without note. And than after even_songe,
     the priores or another serche in absence of
     the abbes, after the space of is psalme Deus misere_atur
     nostri, schal smyte with her hande, as sche dyd
|r20 before evensonge. And than al schal ryse and enclyne
     religiously before e deske, towarde the auter; and
     so go ther weyes. So et that none go to any other
     place, than even forthe down to the freytour, with_oute
     special leue, asked and had of the presidente.
|r25 But the ebdomadarye schal entende the chyme, as it is
     expressed in the fyftyeth chapter of thes |r[f.62b] presente
     addicions.



|p121    |r[25]


|r25[.] Of obseruaunce at the collacion and complen.
        Whan they here the secunde pele to the collacion,
     they schal come togyder and sytte in order in e
     chapter, kepyng er sylence as it is seyd before in
 |r5 the xiiiite chapter of thys boke[.] And whan the
     president at laste ende of the pele, goeth to her
     place, all muste stonde vp, but not enclyne, saue
     only to the abbes. And whan sche hath enclyned to
     the mageste and take her sete, the couente also at
|r10 her assygnemente schal sytte downe aene.
        And than yf ther be any brother or suster of
     the chapter late passed to god, the presidente
     schall open it to the couen*te [f.62c]. Whiche anone,
     stondyng to the mageste, schal syde for syde say De
|r15 profundis for the soule, with the suffrages and
     dewe reguler obseruaunce, ordeyned therfore, and
     than sytte downe aene.
        And alle thynges tretyd than to be tretyd, that
     is to say, tho thynges that may not congrously be
|r20 deferryd into another tyme, the legister at the
     byddynge of the presydente, schal say: Iube domine,
     after the forme expressyd in be fyrst chapter tofore.
     To whom the presidente schal answer thus: Noctem
     quietam et vitam beatam, tribuat nobis omnipotens
|r25 pater, pius et misericors dominus. The couente
     schal answer Amen. And than |r[f.62d] the legister schal
     rede what somever the abbes assygneth, after the



|p122    |r[25]


     forme expressyd in the seyd chapter. And Deo gracias
     ended, the couente schal ryse, and turne to the mageste,
     the presidente saynge with lowe inclynacion: Adiutorium
     nostrum, and the couente in lyke wyse answeryng with
 |r5 note, al under oo tune Qui fecit celum et terram.
        And after thys, they schal go to the quyer pro_cession
     wyse, the ongest before, and aboute the laste
     ende of the brethres complen, the president or the
     ebdomadary in her absence, schal make e termynacions
|r10 both before and after Pater noster, and they schal kepe
     the same obseruaunces at complen, as be expressed
     tofore in lyke in*ges |r[f.63a] at matens prime and houres,
     begynnyng whan the brethren haue ended ther oryson,
     after the antem of our lady.
|r15 Saue after the laste Deo gracias, the ebdomadary
     schal say thys versicle Aue maria, enclynyng. So that
     from the begynnyng of e antem of our lady into the
     ende of seruyse, all schal knele, excepte tho sustres
     at schal synge the versicle whyle they synge it, and
|r20 tho sustres that be tabled or assygned by the chauntres
     to synge the verses of Salue regina, or Regina celi.
     Whiche schal be songen standyng at the deske. And whan
     the laste collecte is ended, alle schal putte downe
     ther veyles, and so kepe them into the mor*ne |r[f.63b].
|r25 Of verses at complen in lenton.
        In lenton after Nunc dimittis, thys antem: O
     mitissime, schal be songe with verses, the quyer
     knelyng at these wordes O benigne creator, and O pie
     redemptor, but at O mitissime triumphator, all schal



|p123    |r[25]


     stonde vp aene. So et, that the sustres that schal
     synge the verses, stonde at the lectren whyle they
     synge them.
     Of holy water after complen
 |r5    Alle seruyse ended with Anime fundatorum, they
     schal echone turne vp into ther stalles, and say eche
     of hem knelynge fyftene Aues, softly, not abydyng the
     Aue belle. But the presidente only, may lene to the
     forme or deske and knele[.] And whan sche maketh a
|r10 sygne, with |r[f.63c] her hande, they schal ryse and go pro_cessionally
     to take holy water, the eldest goynge
     before. And as they take it two and two togyder the
     eldeste fyrste, they schal enclyne to the president
     that eueth it, namely yf it be the abbesse, that
|r15 eueth it, and after thys they schal go to the dortour,
     as it scheweth in the thre and fyfty chapter of is
     boke.



|p124    |r[26]


     Sex and twentyeth chapter[.]  Of the maner of doyng of
     dyuyne seruise et cetera.
        In alle principal and hygh festes, |r[f.63d] the abbes
     stalle is to be arayed more honestly than other tymes.
 |r5 And the chauntres with one of her felawes, in al
     suche festes schal kepe the myddes of the quyer, al
     seruyse tyme, occupyeng the office of the rectrices,
     or two begynners, begynnynge alle thynge towarde e
     este, saue at Indulgete they schal conforme them to
|r10 the quyer.
        All maner of chaptres at evensonge, complen,
     matens, pryme and howres, schal euer be seyd in a
     lowe sober voyce.
        Also in all hygh festes, the chauntres schal
|r15 assygne one of the eldest sustres, to rede the fyrste
     lesson at matens, the pryores to the secunde, and the
     abbes |r[f.64a] to the thrydde, and foure at the lefte of the
     eldest sustres, beste disposed in ther brestes, to
     synge e verse of the response at the fyrst euensonge,
|r20 and the thrydde verse at matens, and Alleluia at
     masse, and Benedicite at euensonges in festes of oure
     lady.
        In all other double festes and dayes, sche schall
     assygne other sustres to do the seyd thynges, and al
|r25 other, after the feste or day is. So that on sondayes
     and festes of nyen lessons, or of the strength of nyen
     lessons, as seynt Iohn portlatyn, Inuitatorium triplex.
     and suche other, sche schal assygne another suster to
     synge the venite with the sustres at be tabled therto.



|p125    |r[26]


     |r[f.64b] And so sche schal do to e thryd response at matens
     and Alleluia at masse, but in double festes, foure at
     leste schal synge the Venite.
     Of makynge of the table.
 |r5    Wherfor, that the more certeynte be had in our
     lordes seruyse, in the chirche, chapter, and freytour,
     the chauntres schal euery fryday make the table, and
     sette it in suche a place of the quyer, that all the
     sustres may loke ervpon and se what they schal do.
|r10 Hauynge a besy attendaunce, that no sustres be tabled
     to any thynge, but suche as haue habilite and suffi_cience
     to kepe it in euery place, in redynge and
     syngynge, wyke by wyke, as they be in order after ther
     pro*fession |r[f.64c]. And et for the more sykernes, sche
|r15 schal aske of tho sustres, whom sche is purposed to
     table, wheyther they may kepe ther wykes or no. So
     that yf they be notte disposed to kepe ther tymes,
     sche may puruey and make a chaunge with some other
     susters, eche kepynge for other as ther course cometh
|r20 aboute, what syde that euer they be of. But none
     schal be ouer skypped in any wyse for any suche
     chaunge, withoute a very resonable cause knowen to
     the couente, and allowed by the abbes.
        Also it is to be marked, that in the table schal
|r25 neuer be sette past two sustres to any thynge, nor no
     mo schal synge it, but yf they be as*sygned |r[f.64d] by the
     abbes or chauntres.



|p126    |r[27]


     Of prayer in stede of sensyng. Capitulum xxvii.
        Also for as moche as the sustres, vse no sensyng,
     it is acordyng that in stede of encense they vse
     deuoute prayer, sayng with the prophete: Dirigatur
 |r5 domine ad te oratio mea sicut incensum in conspectu
     tuo. And therfor seynte benet sayth in hys rewle,
     that the sondayes namely and holy dayes, al the
     couente scholde be occupyed in devoute prayers and
     holy redyngges. Wherfor yf any befounde mysoccupyed,
|r10 as with ydelnes or vayne tales, suche one is vnpro_fitable,
     not only to herselfe, but also sche hyndreth
     other. Ande therfor he commaundeth, that yf any |r[f.65a]
     suche befounde in e congregacion, they schal after
     certeyne monycions to leue, and wyll not amende, be
 |r5 scharply corrected, openly in the chapter. By thys
     worde correccion, after seynte benettes rewle, is
     vnderstonde evermore a disciplyne. Suche also more_ouer,
     as may be at the seruyse of the day, namely be
     holy dayes, withoute preiudice of ther own seruyse,
|r20 it is accordynge that ei stonde vp, at Magnificat,
     Nunc dimittis, Te deum, Benedictus gosbelles, and
     suche other, conformynge themself as moche as they
     may, to e comen ordynaunce of al holy chirche.
     Capitulum xxviii.
|r25   Also for holy water is re*newed |r[f.65b] euery sonday,
     it is accordyng that they take no bodyly mete, tyl



|p127    |r[28]


     they haue take holy water and holy brede deuoutly and
     with reuerence of the abbes or priores or ebdomadaryes
     handes. For therto euery crysten man and woman is
     bounde by the lawe outetake comenyng dayes.



|p128    |r[29]


     Capitulum xxix. Of processiones.
        As for processions whan the sustres haue any, they
     schall kepe thys forme. The response, or antem, or
     Salue festa dies, bygonne, the crosse schal go before,
 |r5 or els holy water, as in the rogacion dayes, as it
     scheweth in the fourtyeth chapter. And in al hygh,
     and principal festes the sextayn, or another suster at
     here assygnement, schal bere an ymage of our lady after
     the crosse, and two torches schal be born on euery |r[f.65c]
|r10 syde a lytle before be ymage. After them schal folowe
     the sustres that synge not, and after them the hole
     quyer, the ongest before, and the abbes comynge be_hynde,
     in the ende of the procession, al beyng in ther
     hole reguler habite. And they muste take hede at ther
|r15 pace be not to faste neyther to softe and that two and
     two go ever togyder as moche as they may, none
     scholdryng other, and that ther be euer two or thre
     fete space, betwene hem at go before and hem that
     folowe after, that eche may here other and beware of
|r20 discorde[.] And as they passe oute by the abbes, ei
     schal enclyne to her, and whan they come in aene,
     they schal |r[f.65d] enclyne before the deske, and aene whan
     they take ther stalles.
        And thes be the dayes that the sustres schal haue
|r25 procession. That is to say, in the feste of circum_cision,
     translacion of seynt birgitt and seynt iohn
     baptist, whan ther festes fal on the sonday and not



|p129    |r[29]


     elles. Also on palme sonday, seynt markes day, rogacion
     days, peter and paule, saynt anne day, mykelmasday and
     in al the festes of our lady, and principal or hygh
     double festes of the ere, kepyng the same tyme that
 |r5 the brethren do. So that the brethren go forth with
     masse after ther procession, and neuer tary for e
     sustres.
     Of wykly suffrages amonge |r[f.66a] the sustres.
        Euery sonday the sustres schal say matens and
|r10 houres of the holy goste. Euery monday, tuesday and
     wensday, dirige with thre lessons, after the use of
     the cathedral chirche; and euery thursday thes thre
     psalmes: Confitebor tibi domine the firste; Diligam
     te domine, and Deus deus meus respice.
|r15 Also eche fryday comenly after ther matens, they
     schal say the seuen psalmes and comen letany, for ther
     synnes and others, and after at take a disciplyne, yf
     it be a disciplyne day. From the whiche obseruaunce,
     none schal absente herself withoute special licence.
|r20 Wherfore they that |r[f.66b] be not at matens schal dyspose
     hem to come betymes perto, that they mowe go in pro_cession
     with ther sustres aboute the cloyster, the
     crosse goyng before. And whan al be come in aene into
     ther stalles, the crosse schal go hys way, and the
|r25 ebdomadari schal rede the letany in suche a place
     assygned to her by the abbesse, wher sche may be herde
     of al the quyer. And whan er is any suster or brother



|p130    |r[29]


     passed, sche shal say thys colecte Deus cui proprium
     the lasse, tofore Fidelium, all the thrytty dayes.
        Also eche saturday for the ryghtwes, they schal
     say thes thre psalmes[:]
 |r5 Attendite popule |r[f.66c] meus; Misericordias domini,
     and, Confitemini, the secunde.



|p131    |r[30-32]


     Capitulum xxx.
        In aduente, ther is no chaunge of obseruaunces.
     Saue on cristmas eue, al seruise is wonte to be done
     by tenne of e clokke afore none, and the sustres com_plen
 |r5 by fyue.
     Capitulum xxxi.
        On cristemas day, our lady mas schal be Lux ful_gebit.
     Whiche is not wonte to be sunge ouer longe,
     but of a sadde and goodly mene mesure, and two torches
|r10 schalle bren at our lady auter al the masse tyme[.]
     Capitulum xxxii.
        In the feste of the purificacion, the abbes is to
     be serued of her taper fyrst amonge the sustres, and
     after her the priores. Ande |r[f.66d] after them, the elder
|r15 sustres as they be in order, and at laste the ongeste.



|p132    |r[33]


     Thre and thyrtyeth chapter. Of aschwensday.
        On aschwensday and so forth that wyke outake
     fryday, the sustres schal haue Te deum at matens.
     And eche wensday and fryday from thens into ester,
 |r5 they schal take a disciplyne, excepte the vtas of our
     ladyes festes, double festes, and cathedra sancti petri.
        Also eche suster alone or with a felawe, before
     takyng of asches or after, shal knele and say
     deuoutly in the quyer, the |r[f.67a] seuen psalmes and the
|r10 letany, that they may be the more abyl to be general
     absolucion.
        And whan the asches be halowed and in euyng to
     the brethren, they schal come downe barefoted pro_cession
     wyse, the eldeste folowynge the abbes goynge
|r15 before, to e comenyng wyndows. And ther the abbes
     and the priores schall take ther asches togyder, but
     all other sustres schal take hem, as many togyder, as
     may religiously knele at the seyd wyndowes, after the
     forme of comenynge, from the eldeste into the
|r20 ongeste. And they schal not go from dyuyne seruyse
     tyl hygh masse be ended, praynge to our lorde
     deuou*tli |r[f.67b] for remission of ther own synnes and of
     others.



|p133    |r[34-35]


     Capitulum xxxiiii. Of lenton, et cetera.
        In lenton, the verses at complen, schal be songen
     after the forme expressed tofore, in the fyue and
     twenty chapter. And whan the brethren haue Dirige in
 |r5 the sustres euensonge tyme, ei schal not make ther
     termynacion to Pater noster, tylle allyn with the
     tollynge after, be fullyche cesed.
     Capitulum xxxv. On palme sonday, the sustres schal
     haue procession, before the whyche, the palme schal be
|r10 distribute after the forme of distribucion of tapers
     on candelmasse day or purificacion of our lady. Ande
     thys wyke, all schal eue hemself to deuoute prayer,
     remem*bryng |r[f.67c] our lordes passion, and that he prayed
     for synners in the crosse.



|p134    |r[36]


     Capitulum xxxvi[.] Of schyrthursday.
        A schirthursday the sustres schal say the seuen
     psalmes as they dyd on aschwensday. And that day al
     schal be comened at hyghmasse, and none at our lady
 |r5 masse, withoute special licence of the general con_fessoure.
     Aenst that day the pryores schall warne
     the sustres, that hote water be redy for the couente,
     that they may wasche ther fete and come honestly to
     the maundy, for whoso cometh otherwise, schal be
|r10 corrected. And the sextayne schal ordeyn for two
     towels and two basens at leste of warme water, at |r[f.67d]
     nothynge be to seke whan it schal be sette a werke.
        Also, from the begynnyng of euensonge on
     schyrthursday, into euensonge on ester eue, the
|r15 sustres schal synge ther seruyse more lower, and
     more devoutly, in reverence of our lordes passion,
     with a maner of mornyng, not to lowe, nor to styll,
     but in a mene as it is moste accordyng.
     Of the mawndy.
|r20   Forthermore, for our lord ihesu criste, souer_eyne
     mayster of al mekenes, of hys inestymable and
     profounde mekenesse, fyrste and principally, began
     and taught, vnto hys dere and welbyloved disciplys,
     in tyme of that moste worthy feste and laste supper
|r25 on schirthurs*day |r[f.68a], the moste excellente and singuler
     obseruaunce of hys mawndy to be kepte, therfor the
     abbes pretendyng by office after her degre, hys
     astate, oweth to folowe the steppes of hym, in all
     that sche may, in kepyng and fulfyllynge of the seyd
|r30 obseruaunce, waschynge and wypynge the fete of al



|p135    |r[36]


     her gostly doughtres and disciplesses, lyke as it is
     kepte for a perpetual memory and ensample, in other
     places of religion. In what maner it is to be ob_serued,
     our lord scheweth hymselfe, in that he dyd
 |r5 water into the basen, and broughte it also and sette
     it down by the fete of hys disciplys, and full mekly
     and lowly, wi |r[f.68b] an inwarde feruent charite, knelynge,
     and bowynge down hys moste holy body and swettest
     handes to er fete, wasched them personally, and
|r10 wyped them louyngly, as of hys moste familiar and
     special chosen mayne, withoute any maner obsequye or
     mynystrynge of other.
        Neuertheles, consideryng how insufficient and
     vnworthy we be, to the perfeccion of hym, and also
|r15 beholdyng and obeyng to the olde vsages and customs
     of holy faders of religion, this forme is and ought
     to be kepte in thys monastery foreuermore.
        The sustres euensonge ended on schirthursday, al
     schal go processionally to the chapter hows, in er
|r20 hole habite, the on*geste |r[f.68c] before, and ther take
     ther places ordinatly withoute any taryenge. So that
     the syngers sytte togyder syde to syde, lesse any
     discorde be made in ther syngynge. And whilst the
     abbes doeth of her mantel, and tyeth vp her sleues
|r25 of her cowle, and arayeth her by helpe of her sustres,
     the couente schal bare er fete to waschynge, and so
     sytte and shew the former parte of ther toes bare
     that all may se hem.



|p136    |r[36]


        And whan the abbesse cometh in atte the dore, with
     two sustres folowyng her in ther cowles, and beryng two
     basens of warme water after her, no suster schal than
     aryse, nor enclyne to her, for sche |r[f.68d] cometh than as a
 |r5 mynyster, but the chauntres anone schal begyn thys an_tem:
     Dominus ihesus. Whiche antem, with all other
     thynges folowynge, is to be songe of suche a mesure
     that nothynge be ouerskypped, and that they cese not
     of syngyng tyl the priores be come in aene, after the
|r10 waschyng of the abbes fete.
        First therfor the abbes schal go to e priores,
     or to her at is president for that tyme. And knelynge
     down with alle mekenes and inwarde deuocion, sche
     schal take her ryght fote in her lefte hande, and
|r15 pouryng water thervpon thryes, with her ryght hande,
     wasche it, and wi the towel aboute her |r[f.69a] myddes wype
     it, and with her mouth kysse it, the suster that is
     so wasche, somdele holdyng vp her fote to the abbes,
     that sche may the more esyly do her office of mekenes.
|r20 Whiche done, sche schal leue the ryght fote, and do
     the same wyse to the lefte fote. And than bothe
     risyng and enclynyng eche to other, sche that is
     wasche schal say to the abbes: Misereatur vestri
     omnipotens deus. To whom the abbes schal answer:
|r25 Et dimittat vobis peccata vestra. And after
     thys, sche that is wasche schal sytte downe aene,
     and the abbes schal serue al other sustres the same
     wyse and after the same forme, begynnyng with the
     eldeste first |r[f.69b] on the ryght syde, and that syde al
|r30 serued, sche schal turne ouer to the lefte syde, and



|p137    |r[36]


     do as sche dyd to the ryghte, enclynynge religiously in
     the myddes whan sche turneth ouer.
        And whan sche hath wasche bothe sydes, sche schal
     wasche the fete of her mynystres, other two sustres
 |r5 holdynge the basens to her in the mene whyle, and
     than sche schal enclyne aene in be middes and do of
     her towel withoute, and anone come in aene in her
     hole reguler habite, and dresse her own fete to be
     wasch[.]
|r10    Whan therfor the abbes cometh in aene, the
     couente schal ryse and enclyne to her as they be wonte,
     syttyng aene whan sche is sette. |r[f.69c]
        And than the priores or presidente schal enclyne
     and go oute and aray her with another longe towel
|r15 aboute her myddes aboue her coule, and so come in and
     wasch the abbes fete, by the ministracion of the seyd
     two sustres folowynge her that mynystred to the
     abbesse. And whan sche hathe done, sche schall en_clyne
     aene and go oute with the seyde sustres, and
|r20 doynge of her towel they schal withoute any taryenge
     come in aene in ther hole reguler habite, enclyne,
     and take ther places, and than the couent shal cese
     of syngynge and no erste.
        Whiche done, the abbes schal ryse with al the
|r25 sustres, and turnynge to the mageste, they |r[f.69d] schal
     say the preces with note, as it scheweth in ther
     processionales[.] And al thynge ended, they schal
     enclyne and go ther weys, and than the ebdomadary
     schal make the fyrst sygne to the potacion of charite.
|r30 Atte the whiche al owe to be both seke and hole yf



|p138    |r[37]


     they may, for the sollempnyte of e holy maundy of our
     lord ihesu criste.
     Capitulum xxxvii.
        On godefriday, it is the custom to kepe silence
 |r5 tyl after mete, but yf it be in a case of nede, and to
     be occupyed only in devote prayers and sayng of dauid
     sawter. That day schal be no masse of our lady but
     after the breers teer, the sustres schal synge ther
     prime and teer, and after the brethres none, they shal
|r10 |r[f.70a] do ther sexte and none. And forthwith ei schal go
     in procession with the seuen psalmes, barfote al the
     couent excepte the seke and suche as be licensed by
     the abbes. The letany is to be red of the abbes in
     the myddes of be quyer, al the covent lyeng prostrat
|r15 aboute her.
        Also it is to be take hede, that er prostracions
     in worchyppynge of the crosse, be religiously and
     ordynatly done, two, and two togyder, as ei be in
     order, echone barfote. Saue the abbes schal be alone,
|r20 and after her the priores with an elder suster.
     The sexteyn also, moste take hede at the crosse
     be redy with tapettes and cuschens, and with a taper
     brennyng vpon a can*delstyk |r[f.70b] on the syde of the
     crosse. And sche schal sytte and kepe it, and eve
|r25 it to the worschippers therof, at they may kysse it.
     Saue whilst sche worchippeth it, another suster schal
     holde it and eue it to her, and whan sche hath done,
     sche schal kepe it aene as sche dyd firste.



|p139    |r[38-39]


     Capitulum xxxviii.
        On ester eue, the sustres schal synge ther euen_songe
     solemply as they be wonte in hygh festes.
     Capitulum xxxix[.]
 |r5  Also on ester day after the resurreccion they
     schal worschyp the crosse with prostracions barfote,
     as ei dyd on gode fryday.



|p140    |r[40]


     |r[f.70c] Fourtyeth chapter  Of seynt marke, and of e
     rogacion dayes.
        Seynt marke fallyng in ester wyke, or vpon any
     sonday, he shal neyther haue faste nor procession
 |r5 that ere.
        Alle other tymes, and also the rogacion dayes,
     hyghe masse al ended, the chauntres anone after the
     brethren, schal begyn thys antem Exurge domine.
     Secunde antem on seynte marke day, and rogacion mon_day,
|r10 schal be Surgite sancti. Tuesday De ierusalem,
     and Wensday In nomine domini. The thryd antem schal
     be what the abbes, or chauntres in her abcense wyll,
     or els a response for pece, or for the weder, or for
     the cesyng of pestilence or of |r[f.70d] anyother skorges of
|r15 god or incommodytees, as nede requyreth.
        The fyrste antem al ended in the quyer with
     Gloria patri and repeticion, the procession schal go
     forth after the forme expressed tofore, in e nyen
     and twenty chapter. Saue thes four procession dayes
|r20 at leste, the holy water schal go before, castynge
     holy water before her and on euery syde as sche
     goeth, and the baner and ymage of our lady schal
     folowe. And whan the seyd antems or responses be
     ended, two sustres schal synge one of the letanyes
|r25 stondyng in ther processionalles in order, as they
     be assygned. And the chauntres muste take hede, that



|p141    |r[40]


     they turne home aene |r[f.71a] be tymes, that they haue none
     nede, to adde to mo seyntes than be expressed in er
     bokes.
        At the entres into the quyer they schal synge:
 |r5 Ab inimicis nostris, or Regina celi, or what they wyl
     els; and the abbes schal say the versicle and collecte
     folowynge.
        Whan they haue any procession, any other tymes of
     the ere, for any nedeful thynge, yf the hygh mas be
|r10 bygon, they schall synge Ab inimicis altogyder saue
     the laste verse, withoute the chirche, for stonyeng of
     the preste at auter.



|p142    |r[41]


     Capitulum.xli.
        On witsonday, the sustres schal begyn ther pryme,
     after the brethres pryme, bycause of the solempne
     obser*uaunce |r[f.71b] to be hadde that day, after our lady
 |r5 masse, before e brethers teer. From the whiche
     obseruaunce, none schal presume to absente hemselfe,
     withoute special licence of the abbes for a grete
     resonable cause. But all in the mene tyme, schal
     eue hemselfe swetly to prayer, and with hertly and
|r10 inwarde deuocion, aske grace, and comforte of the
     holy goste, sayng stylly eche of them alone thys
     holy ympne: Veni creator spiritus, and thys antem
     Veni sancte spiritus, and versicle Emitte spiritum
     tuum, with es two collectes: Deus qui corda, and
|r15 Deus cui omne cor patet, knelyng al the whyle in
     ther stalles, or in some other place more conueniente.
     |r[f.71c] On relike sonday, the relikes schal be born
     aboute in procession, with alle dewe worchip and
     reuerence. Not bare, but couered with golde or
|r20 syluer after the rewle, or at leste with clothe of
     gold or sylke.



|p143    |r[42-44]


     Capitulum xlii. [Capitulum] xliii. [Capitulum] xliiii.
     Of al sowle day.
        Al sowle day the sustres schal haue Te deum at
     ther matens, aand a disciplyne at the breers pryme.
 |r5 And that day al schal kepe silence but yf it be for a
     nedeful thyng, occupyeng themself in saynge of dauid
     sauter and diriges with other prayers and deuocions.
     Neuertheles after mete they may speke, such as haue
     ended ther dewte, and none els. |r[f.71d]
|r10 That day ther schal be seyd no mo colectes at
     placebo and laudes, pryme and houres, thof ther be a
     corse present, but thys colecte: Fidelium deus. The
     iiide and vite responses shal be seyd aene after the
     repete of the verses. And so they shal be in diriges
|r15 for al corses presente, and for all buschops and
     kynges. After the ixte response Libera me domine,
     the verses schal be: Dies illa[,] Quando celi
     mouendi sunt et terra, Ardentes anime, Dum veneris
     iudicare seculum per ignem, Creator omnium, Dum
|r20 veneris. And than the response schal be seyd aene
     to the verses. Alle other tymes the verses schal be
     Dies illa, Quando celi, |r[f.72a] Quid ergo, Dum veneris,
     Nunc christe, Libera me. Neuertheles, for euery
     corse presente, and for buschops, kynges, lordes,
|r25 abbes, aand confessours, after Nunc christe is to be
     seyd Dum veneris; and than the response schal be
     seyde aene, with Requiescant in pace and laudes
     folowyng. Saue from al sowle day into the wensday



|p144    |r[42-44]


     tofore ester Exaltabo with hys orisons, schal be seyd
     before laudes, and Voce mea after laudes.
     Of oer notabiliteys for sayng of diriges.
        In al diriges after al soule day, schal be seyd
 |r5 euermore at Placebo, foure collectes and as many at
     laudes, and neuer mo in the quier. And et one of
     hem schal be Adiuua nos for the founders |r[f.72b] and her
     frendes, or els Deus cui proprium the lasse, with this
     addicion propiciare animabus fundatorum nostrorum et
     animabus famulorum, famularumque tuarum, et omnia
     eorum peccata dimitte. So that the collectes for the
     buschops be lefte unseyde, but whan the buschops and
     founder may be had togyder, withoute excesse of the
     nomber of foure, as it scheweth in the comen bokes
|r15 ordeyned for saynge of diriges, in e quyer.
        In cotidian diriges with thre lessons oute of the
     quyer, thes schal be the four collectes:
     Ad placebo:
     Adiuua nos deus[.] Deus qui inter. Deus venie lar_gitor.
|r20 Fidelium deus.
     Ad laudes.
     Ascendant ad te. |r[f.72c] Deus cuius misericordie. Inclina
     domine. Animabus quas domine. Neuertheles within
     the tryntal of euery suster and brother, the fyrst
|r25 schal be for the tryntal, secunde for the founders
     and none for the buschops, iiide and iiiite as it is
     seyde before.
        The versicle before the lessons, schal be Com_placeat
     tibi domine vt eruas, and the ixte respons
|r30 Libera me domine de viis inferni.



|p145    |r[42-44]


        Saue in ester tyme al the antems schal be seyd
     with ther psalmes at Placebo, Dirige, and laudes, and
     with ther own versicles before euery nocturne, and
     the iiide respons after euery nocturne, schal be
 |r5 Libera me domine de morte eterna.
        Moreouer, the firste dirige that |r[f.72d] is seyd in
     the quyer after the vtas of ester, it schal be seyd
     with the psalmes, antems, versicle and lessons of the
     fyrste nocturne what day that euer it be, and so it
|r10 schal be for euery corse present, and for buschops,
     and kynges, al efter tyme. But after that wyke, on
     the monday schal be seyd the .iide nocturne[.]
     Tuesday, the thryd. Wensday, the firste. Thursday
     e secunde. Fryday, the thryd, with Libera me domine
|r15 in euery nocturne, as it is seyde before.
        Other obseruaunces schew before in the nyenth
     chapter of thys boke.



|p146    |r[45]


     |r[f.73a] Fyue and fourtyeth chapter. Of the orderyng of the
     quyer.
        In the entres of the quyer on the ryghte syde at
     the weste ende schal be the abbes stalle, and on the
 |r5 lefte syde the priores. Other sustres schal stonde,
     the eldeste nexte the abbes and priores, halfe at oo
     syde, halfe at other as they be in order of profession.
     Not al the weke et togyder, but so egaly departed,
     that eche syde be lyke in byggenes of voyce and kun_nyng.
|r10 But at our lady masse, the abbes and priores
     and elder sustres, may stonde at este ende, and the
     onger sustres after them.
     Of the office of the abbes.
        In al principal |r[f.73b] festes, the abbes shal execute
|r15 the seruyse, syngynge the verse and benedicite at
     euensonge, and the thrydde verse at matens, and alle_luia,
     or the laste verse of the tracte at our lady
     masse. Also sche schal rede the trydde lesson in al
     principal festes, and so sche may in alle other festes
|r20 whateuer they be, and syng any thyng at euensonge,
     matens, and masse, whan sche feleth herselfe disposed[.]
     Also sche schal make al the terminacions in the
     chirche, eue the thrid blyssynge at matens, whan
     sche redeth not the lesson, and al other blyssynges
|r25 in the quyer, chapter, and freytour; say Anima regis,
     and Domine sancte pater, and eve holy |r[f.73c] water after
     complen[.] Also it lyeth in her charge, to se that al
     reguler obseruaunces be dewly kepte in the quyer and
     in al other places, conformynge herself to the same
|r30 in al poyntes, and to admitte seculer women to the



|p147    |r[45]


     religion, as it is seyd before in the fyftenth chapter,
     or into sustres and brethren of the chapter, suche as
     deuoutly aske it of her, after the forme expressed in
     the eght chapter, with many other thynges, here end
 |r5 there in thys boke sette oute. If sche be absente
     from the quyer, or vndisposed to synge, e priores or
     the ebdomadaryes schal fulfyl her stede, as it is most
     accordynge.
     Of the office of the chauntres.
|r10 The chauntres and |r[f.73d] subchauntresses euerychone, owe
     to be cunnyng and perfyte, in redyng and syngynge,
     hauynge experience of the ordinal and makyng of the
     table for the quyer, with habilite of voyce. Of the
     whyche, one, whom the abbes assygneth, schal be the
|r15 chefe chauntresse.
        To whos charge principally, it belongeth for to
     haue besy attendaunce aboute dyuyne seruyse, that al
     thynge be done in goode rewle, and that nothyng be
     omytted, thorough her negligence, or of any other to
|r20 her power. Also to sette the songe euen, and
     mesurably, neyther to hygh nor to lowe, neyther to
     faste, nor to slowe, but sadly and deuoutly after
     the solennyte |r[f.74a] of the feste or day, and after the
     lengthe of both seruyses of sustres and brethren, and
|r25 after the disposicion of ther brestes. For to syng
     so hygh oo day that ey may no more, or to longe and
     lowe, that they enwery and brynge a slepe both them_self
     and the herers, thys wanteth discrecion, and



|p148    |r[45]


     doctryne of our lord, whiche techeth in hys holy rewle,
     at al thynge scholde be done resonably. Therfor it
     is accordyng, that sche haue alwey two or thre, or
     atte leste one note before al other, in settyng of
 |r5 euery thyng, that they may the better vnderstonde
     what heght, and mesure they schal kepe.
        Sche also muste haue a grete war*nes |r[f.74b], that no
     defautes be made in dyuyne seruyse, so that whan any
     suster, in syngyng or redynge, happeth to make any
|r10 defaute, notably perceyued of other, and doeth not
     amende it forthwith, sche schal fayre end esyly
     amende the defaute. But yf sche perceyue, that it may
     not be mended withoute grete disturbaunce, or taryeng
     of the quyer, than in al suche cases, it is better to
|r15 procede, and latt eche suster, preuyly by herself
     amende the defaute, in awnter the herers be rather
     hurte an edyfyed by suche vnwonte gerrynges, and the
     chauntres whan sche seeth her tyme schal proclame
     suche a defaute, for e why*le |r[f.74c] dissimuled.
|r20    Also it is her parte to se that the quyer be
     euen on euery syde in nowmber, voyce, and kunnyng, by
     kallyng ouer from oo syde to another, as ofte as nede
     is, and this in most conuenient tyme sche may, that
     the quyer be not distracte therby; and to rewle the
|r25 processions et cetera. Also to entune to the abbes
     softly, all the antems that sche is to begyn, in
     double festes and other, and to remembre her whan



|p149    |r[45]


     sche shal rede any lesson, or synge any verse yf nede
     be, or do any other inge in any conuentual acte.
        Also to write or make to be writen, all the
     names of sustres that aske the religion, expressyng
 |r5 the day with the ere |r[f.74d] of our lord, whan they be
     admytted to the ere of profe, and to ordeyn for the
     skrowes of ther renouncyng and of ther obedience
     makyng, yf sche haue the charge of them, and also to
     sette in the names of sustres and brethren professed,
|r10 in the register of the chapter and in the martilage
     whan they decese, with the day and ere of our lorde;
     and erly to rede ther obites after de profundis after
     the houre of teer, as er eres come aboute; and to
     warne the sustres of diriges, trintals, and er dayes,
|r15 and of al other thynges nygh to falle; and to se that
     the rewles, addicions, iniunccions, and al other
     thynges be dewly redde so that nothyng of any statute
     or custom |r[f.75a] be ouerpassed concernyng diuyne seruyse.
        Also it is her charge to haue alle the bokes in
|r20 kepyng that longe to dyuyne seruyse, chapter, and
     freytour, and to se at they be corrected, and made
     of one accorde and also to correcte the reders, so
     that wioute her knowlage, nothyng be corrected in
     any of e seyd bokes, nor chaunged in the ordynal,
|r25 withoute the consente of the abbes, and assente of
     al the couente, by the counsel of the general con_fessour
     in that party as tochyng to the chaunge of



|p150  [45]


     the ordynalle.
        Also to haue the fyrst proclamacions in the
     chapter, of al defautes made openly anywhere in dyuyne
     seruyse, and |r[f.75b] therfor sche oweth to beware, that sche
 |r5 do nothyng troblesly or commaundyngly, and that sche
     be not to importune in her assignacions, nor sette
     anythyng hygher or lower, lenger or schorter, but
     yf it be veray nede, doyng al thynge quietly, pesybly,
     religiously, and charitably, with goodly wordes or
|r10 sygnes, and with maner of a mylde besechyng, that the
     sustres haue a ioy to do anythyng after her. For
     oftentymes, statly and vnreligious porte, cause mur_mur
     and grudgynge, to other, and excludeth grace from
     both partyes.
|r15    None therfor schal presumptuosly, take any note
     before her, but to her settyng hygher or lower, lenger
     or schorter, tabu*lyng |r[f.75c] and assygnementes, all owe
     redyly to obey, as in dyuyne seruyse. Suche as do the
     contrary, to the disturbaunce and lettyng of goddes
|r20 seruyse, they schal be corrected as they that do more
     grevous defautes.
     Of the subchauntresses.
        The office of the chefe subchauntres is for to
     assiste the chauntres in myddes of the quyer in hygh
|r25 festes, and for to fulfyl her office in al places, as
     ofte as she is absente or hathe any impedimente, and
     also to sette the table, after the forme expressed
     tofore in the sex and twentyeth chapter[.]



|p151   [46]


     |r[f.75d] Sex and fourtyeth chapter. Of the alternacion of the
     quyer and of the ebdomadaryes.
        Euery other wyke the quyer schal vary, so that it
     be on the abbesse syde oo wyke, and on the priores syde
 |r5 another wyke, begynnynge euermore the saturday at eue_songe.
     Neuertheles in al principal festes it schal be
     on the ryght syde as for at day, so that yf the ebdom_ary
     be than of that other syde, sche schal come ouer in
     the absence of the abbes, and fulfyl her office on the
|r10 abbes syde, as for that day only and nomore. And so
     sche schal do also, the abbes beyng presente, and not
     disposed to synge, but yf the abbes ordeyne other |r[f.76a]
     wyse.
     Of e ebdomadary.
|r15    The ebdomary is bounde euermore to be one of e
     fyrst in the quyer, and to absteyne and withdrawe her_self
     from alle thynges that wyke, that myght lette her
     to performe her office. Ande whan the abbes executeth
     not the seruyse, sche schal begyn the Inuitatory and
|r20 eue the thrydde blyssyng whan the abbes redeth the
     thrydde lesson, and also fulfyl the office of the abbes
     in principal festes as it is seyd before, excepte in
     suche thynges as belonge to the priores or serges, as
     it scheweth in dyuers places of thes addicions and in
|r25 the ordynalle.
     Of the begynners[.]
     |r[f.76b] The rectours or e two begynners of masse or of
     any oer thynge by the wyke, schal begyn the ympnes,
     psalmes, antemes and responses in ther stalles, but at
|r30 masse they schalle do ther office in myddes of the



|p152    |r[46-47]


     quyer, stondyng, syttyng, and enclynyng alway to the
     este, saue at matens they schal conforme them to the
     quyer as moche as they may, as it scheweth of the sex
     and twenty chapter.
 |r5 Capitulum xlvii. Of the versiculers for e wyke.
        The two sustres that be tabled to synge the ver_sicles,
     schal synge the venite and the first verse at
     matens, and also the smale responses at pryme, houres,
     and complen, with al |r[f.76c] the Benedicamus, euer togyder
|r10 and neuer alone.
     Of e seruise of sustres vnlettred et cetera.
        Sustres that be not lettred, or synge not for a
     tyme, schal not occupye the stalles, withoute special
     dispensacion of the abbes. But they wi other officers,
|r15 schal stonde before the stalles, eche in ther order
     and in ther hole habite, kepyng the same obseruaunces
     at the quyer doeth. Saue after Indulgete, they schal
     do as the abbes assigneth hem[.]
        They that kan not rede, schal say dayly in stede
|r20 of matens, fourty Pater nostres with as many Aues and
     oo crede; and for eche euesonge as many. For pryme,
     teer, sexte, none, and complen, for eche of em |r[f.76a]
     tenne Pater nostres with as many Aues and oo Crede.
     For our lady masse, fyftene Pater nostres with as many
|r25 Aues and oo Crede.
        Euery sonday, instede of matens of the holy goste,
     seuen Pater nostres, with seuen Aues and oo Crede. For
     pryme, teer, sexte, none, and complen, for eche of
     them, oo Pater with one Aue and a Crede, and for euen_songe,
|r30 thre Pater nostres with thre Aues and oo Crede.



|p153    |r[47]


        Euery monday, tuesday and wensday, in stede of
     Dirige, thrytty Pater and with as many Aues and
     oo Crede. Butte whan the sustres haue Dirige in the
     quyer, they schal say our lady sauter.
 |r5   Euery thursday, in stede of the thre psalmes for
     synners, |r[f.77a] fyue Pater nostres, with fyue Aues and a
     Crede[.]
        Euery fryday in stede of the seuen psalmes and
     letany, seuen Pater, with seuen Aues and thre Credes[.]
|r10 And eche saturday in stede of the thre psalmes
     for the ryghtwes, seuen Pater nostre with seuen Aues
     and oo Crede.
        Also for euery sustre and brother aneled, eche
     day nyen days togyder, butt yf they decese in the
|r15 mene whyle, they schal say, nyen Pater nostres with
     nyen Aues and a Crede. But whan they be passed, in
     stede of eche sawter, an hundreth and fyfty pater
     nostres with as many Aues, and a crede, after eche
     fyfty, besyde other suffrages expressed in the
|r20 nyenth chapter.
        Neuertheles, su*che |r[f.77b] as kan say our lady matens
     after seculer vse, they by the assygnemente of the
     abbes and general confessour, in stede of the seyd
     Pater nostres Aues and Credes, schal say our lady
|r25 seruyse, seuen psalmes and letany, dirige, and suche
     other prayers that they kan say. And yf they kan not
     say dauyd psauter, they schal say the seuen psalmes
     and letany, ten tymes in stede therof, or els the
     seyde Pater nostres and Aues.



|p154    |r[48-47]


     Of onge sustres
        onge sustres schal haue the elder in dewe
     reuerence, and elde hemself seruisable to em, at
     all tymes in all places, euyng them way to go wher_euer
 |r5 they mete hem, and puttyng to ther handes to
     helpe them, |r[f.77c] in beryng of hevy bokes or of any
     oer grete berdons, and in all other thynges assygned
     them by the abbes.
        Also o sustres that be with maystres, owe to
|r10 behaue them vnto hem reuerently, and take hede dili_gently
     what is taught hem. For as they be taughte
     nowe, so they may teche other in tyme to come.
     Capitulum xlviii. Of the office of the sexteyne.
        To the sextayne it belongeth, to haue al the
|r15 ornamentes of the chirche in kepynge, that be not
     occupyed amonge the brethren, as chalices, cruettes,
     basens, and suche oer, with al the copes, iewelles,
     and relikes. And that sche hathe in her kepyng, |r[f.77d]
     sche oweth to kepe it hole and sownde, fayre, clene,
|r20 and honeste, and to repayre it and chaunge it, as ofte
     as nede requyre so that sche brynge vp no newe
     thynge, nor do any grete vnwonte thynge, withoute
     knowlage and licence of the abbes. Also sche oweth
     to se, that the awter clothes, awbes, and towelles,
|r25 and also sudaryes, longyng to the awtres, be klene
     wasche, and take to the breren, as ofte as nede
     requyreth.
        Also, whan the sexteyn of the brether syde,
     hath wasch the corporas ones, sche with help of her
|r30 sustres schal wasche them, sterche them, drye them,



|p155    |r[48-49]


     folde them vp, end delyuer them in aene |r[f.78a] to the
     seyd brother. So that no suster wasche, nor touche
     any halowed corporas, with her bare handes, withoute
     lynnen gloves, therto ardeyned, nor sterche hem but
 |r5 with sterche made of herbes only. If they do the
     contrary, they be straytly bounde to telle it to e
     seyde sextayn of the breer syde, that they may be
     newe wasche, and halowed aene.
        Also to her it longeth to haue the kepyng of
|r10 waxe, lampes, oyle, and of al oer thynges longynge
     to the chirche; and also to puruey for syngynge
     brede and commenyng brede, sudaryes, wexe candell,
     talow candell, waxe rolles, tapers, torches, mattes,
     nattes, and roundlettes for the chirch; |r[f.78b] and for penners,
|r15 pennes, ynke, ynke hornes, tables, and suche other,
     as the abbesse assygneth her.
        Also to open and schet the dores and wyndowes,
     of the sustres quyer and comenyng places, and to
     lyghte and quenche the tapers and candels, and snoffe
|r20 them in suche wyse and in suche tyme, at the sustres
     be not greued with the sauour.
     xlix. Of ryngynge of the dortour belle.
        Also to the sexteyn it belongeth to rynge the
     dortour belle, after the forme that sche is assygned
|r25 by her souereyne. Oer thynges longynge to her office,



|p156    |r[49]


     schewe before in the sexten chapter, in the begyn_nyng
     therof, and in other dyuers places of thes pre*_sente |r[f.78c]
     addicions.



|p157    |r[50]


     Fyftyeth chapter. Of takyng of myxtom and sayng of
     graces.
        Aged sustres and seke, and also onge and hole,
     that for labour, or for any feyntnes or feblenes, or
 |r5 for any other resonable cause, may not abyde fastyng
     tyl the couent goe to mete, they may on the fastyng
     dayes, outake water dayes, take brede and drynke in
     the freytour, after De profundis at graue, be licence
     of the abbes or presidente.
|r10 On suppynge dayes, they may take an egge or |r[f.78d]
        two, or any other thynge ordeyned for them by the
     officers after the tyme aske. But none schal take
     any potage nor flesche mete but in the fermery or par_lour,
     and thys with special licence of the abbes.
|r15 For in her power and moderacion it is, whan the sustres
     schal take any recreacion in the parlour or fermery,
     as whan they be latte blode, or for any suche other
     cause.
        Neuertheles, the legister and seruitours, euery
|r20 day before mete, fastyng dayes and other, whan they
     take not ther myxtom after De profundis, may take a
     messe of potage in the freytour, or any other thyng
     assygned by the abbes, and ordeyned by the cele*_res, |r[f.79a]
     or by other officers as it is seyd before, and
|r25 thys in suche a seson, as they may make an ende
     therof by the secunde chyme. So et, that none
     take ther myxtom twyes a day, nor any mete or drynke,



|p158    |r[50]


     outake spyces, saue only in the freytour, parlour,
     or fermery, withoute special licence of the abbes,
     but yf any sodeyne case fall of vnwonte nede.
     Of e chyme smytyng
 |r5    Moreouer, whan al seruyse is ended, the celeres
     schal se, that ther be no longe taryeng from mete,
     but as sone as e kokes be redy, sche schal smyte the
     fyrst stroke vpon the chyme, and warne the brethren
     to do the same on ther syde. And |r[f.79b] after the space
|r10 of oo miserere whyle, the ebdomadary shal smyte two
     strokes, and an the couent muste drawe to the frey_tour.
     And after the space aene of another miserere
     whyle, the abbes or president schal smyte thre
     strokes for allyn, so that betwene eche stroke be the
|r15 space of one Aue maria.
        Neuertheles, the two fyrst smytynges before
     supper and conuentual drynkynges, schal be done by
     the ebdomadary, but the thryd as it was before mete.
     Of sayng of graces.
|r20    Whylst therfor the president smyteth allyn, the
     couente schal stonde in the freytour, in ther places,
     withoute the tables, before ther setes, towarde the
     mageste. |r[f.79c] And whan sche cometh into the freytour,
     they schal stonde face to face, hauyng ther handes in
|r25 crosse wyse in er cowel sleves. And as sche passeth
     by them by the myddes of the freytour, they schal
     turne aene to the mageste, but not enclyne, but to
     the abbes, as sche passe before them.
        Than the president stondyng vpon the gre of the
|r30 freytour, schal rynge the belle one Aue whyle, en_clynyng



|p159    |r[50]


     to the mageste, both before and after, and
     than go and stonde aboue al, byneth e gre, on her
     owen syde. And al enclynyng and stondyng to the
     mageste, the chauntres or subchauntres in her |r[f.79d]
 |r5 absence, withoute any chaungyng of sydes euermore,
     schal begyn graces with note in a sober voyce sayng
     thus:
        Benedicite. The presidente schal answer withoute
     note: Dominus. And than the couente schal procede
|r10 the graces with note as the chauntres began, in thys
     wyse on fastynge dayes generally:
        Edent pauperes, et cetera. If it be a suppyng
     day, they schal say thus:
        Oculi omnium in te sperant domine, so procedyng
|r15 al the graces vnder oo tune. Whiche is to be obserued
     |r[f.80a] euermore, both before mete and supper and after, and
     before alle conuentual drynkynges, so that the chauntres
     sette the tune and rewle be mesure.
        At Gloria patri and whylst they say Pater noster
|r20 and Aue maria, they schal enclyne, face to face, as
     they be wonte, and at Sicut erat to kyrieleyson, they
     schal ryse aene and stonde as they dyd before. But
     from Pater noster, into the grace is all ended, they
     schal stonde toward the mageste.
|r25    Whan the ebdomadary sayth Et ne nos, the abbes,



|p160    |r[50]


     or president schall go to her place and take her sete,
     and the ebdomadary at Benedic domine nos et dona tua
     schal blysse ones before her with her ryt hande,
     hauynge the |r[f.80b] rynge of her profession vpon her fynger.
 |r5 Not stretchynge oute her arme, nor beryng her hande
     aboute the freytour, nowe to oo syde, now to another,
     but dressyng her mende to god, sche oweth to pray hym
     in her sowle, at he wyll by the seyd blyssyng, blysse
     all thynge sette, or to be sette before them for ther
|r10 bodyly sustynaunce, for that seson.

     Of the legister.
        In the mene whyle, the legister schal go to the
     gre, and enclynynge in the myddes tofore the ymage of
     our lady, say:
|r15    Iube domine, benedicere. To whom the president
     syttynge atte the table, schal answer thus on fastyn*_ge |r[f.80c]
     dayes generally:
        Cibo spiritualis alimonie, reficiat nos rex
     eterne glorie. The couente schal answer thus Amen[.]
|r20 On suppyng days, the president schal say thys bene_diccion:
     
        Mense celestis participes, faciat nos rex eterne
     glorie. The couente Amen. And than al enclynyng reli_giously,
     eche schal go take ther setes as they be in
|r25 order, but the legister schal go to the redyng place,
     and the seruitours to bryng in mete.



|p161    |r[50]


        And whan al be sette, anone the legister schal
     begyn to rede, distynctly and o*penly |r[f.80d], that al may
     vnderstonde it. And sche muste rede suche mater,
     as the abbes or chauntres assigneth, to the edyfyeng
 |r5 of sowles. So that none meddel with the correccion
     of the reder, nor make her turne aene, whan any
     desyreth be sygne to here any mater aene, saue only
     the presidente and chauntres.
        Ones euery wyke, schal be redde the rewles of
|r10 seynt sauyour, and of seynt austyn, hoole, and also
     a parte of thes addicions, after the forme sette in
     the laste endynge of thys boke.
        At the laste ende of mete and soper, whan the
     presidente sayth: tu autem, anone withoute any delay,
|r15 the legis*ter |r[f.81a] schal answer us:
     Tu autem domine, miserere nostri. The couente
     schal answer in a sober voyce, the chauntres takynge
     the fyrste note att the leste:
        Deo gracias. And than the presidente schal
|r20 rynge the bell, and the couente schal ryse and stonde
     before the tables, lyke as they dyd before mete,
     enclynyng reuerently to the mageste, whan they take
     ther places. And whan the presidente is in her place,
     the chauntres schal say
|r25 Memoriam fecit mi*rabilium |r[f.81b] suorum. Or els
     yf it be a suppynge day:



|p162    |r[50]


        Confiteantur tibi domine omnia opera tua. The
     couente schall answer in is wyse:
        Et sancti tui benedicant tibi. kepyng the same
     tune, vnder oo voyce, into the antem of our lady. At
 |r5 Gloria patri they schal enclyne face to face, and at
     Sicut erat, rise and turne aene to the mageste.
        And whan the ebdomedary hath seyd Agimus tibi
     gracias, and the couente hath answerd Amen, the
     chauntres schal entune thys psalme us: |r[f.81c]
|r10    Miserere mei deus. And than the couente en_clynynge
     to e mageste, schal procede with the seyd
     psalme to the chirche, syde for syde, processionally,
     the ongest before, al vnder oo tune not descendynge
     to ny, the syde of the ebdomadary sayng thus:
|r15 secundum magnam misericordiam tuam [.] That oer
     syde schal answer thus:
        Et secundum multi tudinem miseracionem tuarum,
     dele iniquitatem meam.
        And whan they |r[f.81d] come into the quyer, they schal
|r20 enclyne as they be wonte, at e deske, in ther stalles,
     and at Gloria patri, and after kyryeleyson, they schal
     knele down tyl grace is al ended, with a Pater noster
     after, and Aue maria. So that the antem of our lady
     with the preces folowyng and De profundis, be seyd



|p163    |r[50]


     wyoute note.
        And whan the abbes or president maketh the sygne
     to ryse, smytyng with her hande as it is wonte, al
     schal ryse and enclyne to the este and at the deske,
 |r5 and so go forth processionally, the ongest before,
     down towarde the lauatory.
        Saue or they wasche er handes, the abbes or
     president schal say
        Benedicite. The |r[f.82a] couent, also withoute note,
|r10 schal answer: Dominus. The abbes: Adiutorium nostrum
     in nomine domini. The couente than enclynynge: Qui
     fecit celum et terram.
        After thys they schal wasch ther handes ordynatly,
     as many as mowe togyder at the lauatory, begynnyng
|r15 from the abbes or presidente and elder sustres to the
     ongest. Whiche done and oo stroke smyte upon the
     chyme, silence is lowsed and the sustres may departe
     and not before, withoute special licence of the pre_sidente.
 
|r20 At supper, graces schal euer be Edent pauperes,
     and the blyssyng vpon the legister: Ad cenam vite
     eterne, perducat nos rex glorie. Amen. |r[f.82b] After
     supper, the chauntres schal begyn: Memoriam fecit
     and the ebdomadary Benedictus deus in donis suis.
|r25 And the same obseruaunces arn to be kepte in al
     poyntes, bothe before supper and after, in waschynge
     of handes and all oer thynges, as it is seyd before



|p164    |r[50]


     of mete.
        Forthermore, on fastynge days and water days,
     before conuentuall drynkynges, the chauntres schal say
     with note: Benedicite, the presidente withoute note:
 |r5 Dominus, and the ebdomadary blissyng the drynke with
     note: Rex angelorum, benedicat potum ancillarum suarum.
     The couente schal answer with note Amen. And than the
     legister saynge Iube domine, the president syttyng in
     her |r[f.82c] place schal say thys blyssyng with note: Sapiencia
|r10 dei patris, nos celestibus instruat disciplinis. The
     couent schal answer Amen, and enclyne and go to ther
     places. And whan al be sette, the president schal make
     a sygne to the legister for to rede. And whan sche seeth
     that al haue dronke, sche shal smyte two strokes upon the
|r15 bell, and an the legister schal cese, and the couent
     schall say fyue Aues, and other fyue Aues, whan sche
     smyteth aene. Thys done, the presidente schall say
     withoute note Benedicite. The couent schal answer: Do_minus.
     And than al schal ryse and enclyne and go ther
|r20 weys religiously. And the |r[f.82d] same wyse, saue withoute
     note, graces schal be seyd in the fermerye, and in the
     parlour.



|p165    |r[51]


     One and fyftyeth chapter[.] Of late comers to graces
     in e freytour.
        If any come late to graces in the freytour or in
     any other place, yf sche come after Gloria patri, sche
 |r5 schal stonde laste, and lowest of al, and say her
     graces tyl sche haue ouertake the couente; but yf
     Gloria patri be not ended, she schal go to her place.
     Neuertheles the ebdomadary schal euer go to her place,
     but yf sche come in after |r[f.83a] Et ne nos.
|r10 If any come in whan grace is ended, sche shal
     mekly go to the gre of the freytour by the myddes.
     And licence asked of the presidente, and graunted by
     sygnes for to say grace, sche schal say it altogyder
     enclynynge, in the myddes, that sche lette not the
|r15 seruitours, and than aske leue aene to ete or drynke
     by sygnes, and so go to her place. And is is to be
     obserued of al, notwithstondyng that any haue leue to
     be from grace.
        If any come in aboute myddes of mete or supper,
|r20 or of conuentual drynkynges, or whan they begyn to
     take vp, sche schal be licence of the presidente
     refresche with the |r[f.83b] legister and seruytours. And
     yf sche be wonte, ofte to come late, sche schal lese
     a parte of her prebende, and be corrected in the
|r25 chapter.
     Of obseruaunce and norture at the table.
        In the freytour, at eche ende, or els in the
     myddes of the hygh table, schal hange a belle and
     the abbes sete shal be in the myddes, honestly
|r30 arayed vnder the ymage of our lady, wher she shal



|p166    |r[51]


     sytte alone, so that none felyschyp with her in any
     place, nor at any tyme take her sete. Other sustres
     schal sytte at the syde tables, in ther order as they
     be professed, two and two togyder at oo messe. Saue
 |r5 the pryores schal sytte in the lefte syde abo*ue |r[f.83c]
     alle, alone, at oo messe, but yf the abbes dispose
     oer wyse.
        None therfor schal absente herselfe from grace,
     as moche as sche may, nor none schal vse to go from
|r10 the couente, tyl after the wasschyng of handes. Also
     syttyng at the table, al schal kepe hygh sylence, and
     ther syghte from wanderyng aboute, and none schal
     stretche her handes to receyue and bodyly fode, tyl
     the soule be refresched with spiritual fode. Wherfor
|r15 whan they be sette, they schal holde ther handes in
     crosse wyse in ther cowle sleues; and whan the
     legister hath redde a clause, or any thyng edifica_tory
     to the sowle, the space of oo Pater noster
     whyle, they schal |r[f.83d] tye vp ther sleues aboute ther
|r20 armes, and take ther bodyly sustynaunce, soberly and
     discretly, with reuerent fere and thankynges to god.
     Ande thryes in mete whyle, and thryes at supper, and
     twyes at eche conuentual drynkyng, whan the president
     smyteth two strokes vpon the belle, they schal cese
|r25 of etynge. And at eche tyme, ioynyng ther handes
     togyder, and leyng them openly upon the table, and
     than eche besyde other in ther lappes, foldyng in
     ther fyngers endes, they schal say with al reuerence



|p167    |r[51]


      and inward deuocion, fyue Aues, in worchyp of the blody
      wondes of our lorde ihesu criste, and of the sorowes of
      our blyssed lady, hys mo*der |r[f.84a].
         None schal loke upon other but seldom, whyle they
 |r5 ete, nor aspye what is sette before other, but thanke
     god of that is sette before them. Ther handes they
     schal haue vpon the table or godely before them, ther
     eres to e legister, and ther hertes to heuen, and
     charites to ther euen cristen. Also they schal sytte
|r10 vp ryght and not to moche bowyng down, nor they schal
     notte spytte ouer the table, nor lene thervpon, with
     ther armes or elbowes, nor holde ther handes vnder er
     chynnes or ouer er faces; nor stretche er handes
     out inordynatly, for to sytt so, it is a token of
|r15 agony or of immoderate study. Therfor kepe they al
     ther membres |r[f.84b] with sadnes and tranquyllyte, kytte
     they ther brede fayre, and ete they ther mete honestly
     and religiosly. Holde they the cuppe with the ryght
     hande, whan they drynke, and stay it with the first
|r20 fynger of the lefte hande. Take they ther mete and
     drynke to ther nede, and not to voluptuosite, after
     the doctrine of seynte paule, al curiosite and grud_gynge
     put away.
        No singularite of metes and drynkes, be had in
|r25 e freytour, withoute special dispensacion of the
     sovereyne; but be they ware echone of surfettes,
     for ther is nothyng more contrary to the helth of
     the body, than is superfluite of metes and drynkes.



|p168    |r[51 ]


        Suche as kanne absteyne themselfe |r[f.84c] wysely for
     god, they schal haue a special rewarde in tyme to come.
     For amonge dayntes, may be deserued a grete martyrdom
     withoute swerde. Neuertheles none schal take any
 |r5 synguler abstynence vpon her, withoute licence of the
     abbes, in awnter god take it for a veyne glory.
        In the power of the abbes it is, for to dyspense
     with the sustres, of reguler fastynges, in tyme of
     nede, and for a resonable and evydent cause; but
|r10 with the fastes of the chirche, none may dispense but
     the general confessour.
        If anythyng sente from any persone, be sette
     before any suster, other than the comente hath, anone
     sche schal sende it to the |r[f.84d] presidente for to take
|r15 therof, yf it be of any grete substaunce. If sche
     wyl not nor do not, sche schal be corrected for the
     note of syngularite. Forthermore, whan the president
     sendeth anythyng to any suster or sustres, they schal
     not leue it untoched in any wyse of frowardenes,
|r20 desire they neuer somoche to absteyne them. But they
     shall take therof reuerently and curteysly, en_clynyng
     to her a lytle with the body, but to the
     souereyne they schal ryse a lytle and enclyne. And
     they may eue parte therof, to ther sustres that sytte
|r25 next hem on euery syde, aboue or beneth, and no ferther
     but seldom, for distraccion of ther mendes from the
     redynge. |r[f.85a] Wherfor yf any wyl sende anythynge fer_ther,
     or ouer to that other syde, thys shal not be



|p169    |r[51]


     done withoute licence of the president, asked by one
     of the seruitours, at schal bere it ouer.
        None schal make any notable sygne, or caste her
     syght openly, or throwe any thyng with her hande, from
 |r5 that oo syde of the freytour to that other, or from
     table to table, nor et to any that sytteth besyde
     her; but they schal conteyne themself, from al
     tokens of vnsadnes, and haue warnes that no trobles
     noyse be made, that myghte disturbe the reder or
|r10 herers, askynge be sygne that they wyl haue, and not
     by worde, so that al thynge |r[f.85b] in the freytour be in
     pece. And therfor the seruitours must haue warnes,
     that they speke not whylst they mynyster, nor make
     any grete noyse, in settynge down or taking vp, or
|r15 remouynge of dysches, plateres, pottes, trenchours,
     and suche other. Forthermore whan they haue any
     nottes, they schal not crakke them with her tethe;
     but they schal open them softly, with ther knyues or
     knypettes, and beware of sownde.
|r20    Moreouer, they schal whype ther knyues and
     spones with ther napkens, and kepe the bordclothes
     klene, from al spottes and hurtes, as moche as they
     may. They that wyl not or do not obserue the seyd
     ordynaunces, but make immoderate |r[f.85c] noyse or be cause
|r25 erof, or els kytte ther fyngers or handes, or spylle
     any lycour upon the clothe or hurte it, al thes shal
     be proclamed and corrected in dewe tyme and place;



|p170    |r[51]


     and the cloth is to be made klene of her, that de_foyleth
     it, or of the buttler or seruytours of that
     wyke.
        Howe longe they schal sytte at mete or supper,
 |r5 or at conuentual drynkynges, thys stondeth in the
     moderacion of the souereyn or president, after the
     day and tyme requireth. Also ther cuppes and spones,
     they schal put into ther coffynes, honeste and klene,
     and kepe them vnder the table, or in some other place
|r10 therto depute, and ordeyned by the abbes |r[f.85d] ther
     souereyne.



|p171    |r[52]


     Two and fyftyeth chapter[.]   Of the seruitours at the
     table.
        Graces ended before mete and supper, and the
     inclynacion made to the mageste, the seruytours schal
 |r5 go oute, and brynge in the seruyse, as the tyme asketh.
     And fyrste the abbes or president schal be serued, than
     the pryores, and afterwarde the couente, as they sytte
     in order, begynnyng at eldest after the pryores, so
     goyng down to the ongest as it is accordyng to the
|r10 rewle. And whan |r[f.86a] they serue the abbes or president
     of anythyng, they schal euer enclyne at the gre of
     the freytour, begynnyng Aue maria softly, to the
     mageste or ymage of our lady, and goyng forth to the
     table, say it vp or ever they sett any thyng downe
|r15 before her, and than enclyne aene and go er weys.
     If it be the souereyn, they schal uncouer it and
     couer it aene, that sche may se what it is, and
     than enclyne and go thens. To other sustres syttyng
     at the syde tables, they schal not say Aue, nor en_clyne
|r20 in the begynnynge, but they schal serue them
     reuerently with an inclynacion at ende only. To
     whom eche suster as they be serued, schall |r[f.86b] enclyne
     aene, as ofte as they receyue any seruyse of them,
     so that none be serued couered whateuer they be,
|r25 outake the abbes and general confessour.
        Moreouer, whan ther be two dyuers potages, eche
     of them schal in euery hande bere a messe of eche,
     that euery suster may chese that moste pleseth her.
     And the same wyse afterwarde, they schal brynge in
|r30 the prebende, honestly before ther brestes, two



|p172    |r[52]


     messe togyder and no mo, begynnynge with the eldeste,
     on euery syde, after the priores.
        These therfor, schal serue er sustres withoute
     grudgynge, charitably, honestly, reverently, cherefully,
 |r5 and indifferently, gladly, meryly, paciently, and me |r[f.86c]
     kly, withoute chaungynge of messes for fauour of any
     person; rostyng, sethynge, buttryng, and hetyng ther
     necessaryes, so that none be compelled to ryse from
     the table, or to compleyne of vncharitable seruyse.
|r10 If anythyng be asked of them by sygne, or by a stylle
     worde, yf ther be no sygne for it, anone they schal
     enclyne, and bryng that is asked, yf it may be goten.
     If they may not gete it, they shal excuse them
     godely, by another softe and honeste sygne. Neuerthe_les,
|r15 none oweth to be to importune or ouer hasty, in
     askynge of anythyng of any seruytour, namely whilst
     they be in seruyng of other, nor to grudge |r[f.86d] withoute
     a iuste cause.
        Also one of them schal euer be presente, and se
|r20 diligently aboute, that the sustres lakke no inge of
     ther dewte. And whan any go from oo syde to another,
     they schal enclyne in the myddes to the mageste or
     ymage of our lady, but yf they bere anythyng, that
     letteth hem to enclyne in goyng ouer.
|r25 Of the pytaunce.
        The pytaunce schal fyrst be brought before the
     president, that sche may take therof fyrst. And than
     at her sygne, the seruitour schal bere it rownde
     abowte the freytour that euery suster may take
|r30 therof, begynnyng at eldest on euery syde. Ande |r[f.87a]



|p173    |r[52]


     whan they be alle serued, it schal be sette aene
     before the president, yf any leue. They that take
     to large therof, schal be spoken to for to amende.
        What maner of mete the congregacion schal be
 |r5 serued with, it schal be expressed in the celeres
     office.
     Of takyng vp of meles.
        Aboute the ende of meles and conuentual dryn_kynges,
     the couent schal sette al thyng fro them;
|r10 towarde the vtter syde of the table before them,
     swepynge togyder with ther napkens, the crommes,
     that the seruytours may the more sonner take vp and
     bere away, after the doctryne of our lorde ihesu,
     sayng to hys seruytours at |r[f.87b] ende of hys feste
|r15 Colligite fragmenta ne pereant. Gadreth togyder the
     broken metes, that they be not loste. So that whan
     the president maketh a sygne to take vp, they schal
     do as they be commaunded and bere the metes to the
     seruyng howse, or to another place therto assygned,
|r20 begynnyng from the ongest to the eldest. After
     thys they schal take vp the remnaunte, that is to say,
     fyrst, drynke, than the garnapes, that they sette on
     ther pottes or cruses; after thys, brede, hole,
     kytte, cantelles, ande crommes; and laste of alle
|r25 salte, endyng euermore with the abbes or president,
     and enclynyng to eche suster as they take them vp,
     and they aene |r[f.87c] to them, as it is seyde before, so



|p174    |r[52]


     that releues be delte to the poer peple by outwarde
     seruauntes, after the tenour of the rewle. Neuerthe_les
     on suppyng dayes, the salte schal stonde vpon the
     tables tyl after supper.
 |r5 Of the latter meles
        Whan the couente goeth forth with graces to the
     chirche, the legister and seruytours schal enclyne to
     them religiously there, or els wher euer they mete
     hem. And whan they be passed, they schal sytte down
|r10 and take ther bodyly sustynaunce, as the couent dyd,
     kepynge ther silence and the same obseruaunce, ex_cepte
     the redynge. Saue they schal be serued of the
     sustres that kepe the seruyng |r[f.87d] howse, and after ther
     mete and supper say er graces withoute note, goynge
|r15 to e chirche, procession wyse, like the couent, the
     ongest before, stondyng and knelyng withoute the
     quyer, before the stalles. And whan they haue wasche
     ther handes, at the comen lauour, than they may speke
     and no erste.
|r20    Forthermore, the first pele ronge to euensonge,
     the buttler schal ordeyne for drynke, and than suche
     as haue nede, may drynke euery day in the ere, outake
     water dayes. For than none schal drynke but water,
     withoute special licence of the abbes. And the same
|r25 is to be obserued, whan the fyrst pele is rongen to
     the collacion. |r[f.88a] For than by licence, of ther souer_eyne,
     they may take potum caritatis on water dayes.
        Moreouer, on fastyng dayes, after the sustres
     euensonge, both water dayes and other, the buttler
|r30 schal ordeyn for drynke for alle the couente. Whiche



|p175    |r[52]


     than schal come togyder conuentually, after the forme
     expressed tofore, in the fyftyeth chapter. Saue on
     water dayes, oo cuppe of water schal be borne rownde
     aboute the freytour, and profered with brede to euery
 |r5 suster for the maners sake, thof they take none
     therof, and thof they dranke ale at mete. And than
     after the fyrst pele to collacion, they may by licence
     of |r[f.88b] the abbes take potum caritatis, as it is seyd
     before. That is to say, a lytel draught of ale yf
|r10 nede be and not elles. For suche as may forbere it
     withoute grete notable hurte, ther charite is beste
     disposed, so that it be done with discrecion and
     after e wylle of the souereyne, for els ther charite
     is cruelte.



|p176    |r[53]


     |r[f.88c] Thre and fytyeth chapter. Of the obseruaunces in
     e dortour
        In the dortour none schal beholde other, nor make
     sygne to other withoute a resonable cause; but all
 |r5 schal there kepe hygh silence. There also non shal
     enclyne to other, of it be the abbes that passeth by
     them; but al schal go forth mekly with ther veyles
     down ouer ther eyn: There, none schal iutte vpon
     other wylfully; nor spyt vpon the stayres, goyng vp
|r10 or down; nor in none other place repreuably, but yf
     they trede it oute forthwyth. Nor any schal make any
     noyse there of vnreste, aboute makyng of ther beddes,
     or schakyng of clothes, |r[f.88d] or remouynge of strawe; or
     of any other thynge, from curfewe bell into ther
|r15 pryme; neyther from mete, into it be thre of the
     clokke after none. And erfor to suche as gretly
     rowte, or make any vnrestful noyse in ther sleppe, or
     at the leste to suche as may not suffer suche vn_quyetnes,
     schal be purueyd another place. Wher they
|r20 may slepe withoute vnrestyng of other.
        Ther beddes schal be made of bordes faste
     nayled togyder and stuffed wi strawe, and they



|p177    |r[53]


     schal haue as many clothes vpon them as nede requyreth
     after the discrecion of the souereyne, whiche oweth to
     se that none haue mo*re |r[f.89a], than nedeth, nor lasse,
     and that two lye not togyder in oo bedde.
 |r5    Ther lyenge schal be in ther stamens gyrde aboute
     hem with a lyste, and in ther hosen; and vpon ther
     hedes, they may haue a nyght kerchyf, and a nyght cappe.
     If any haue desire to lygh in her cowle, none schal
     presume thys, withoute special licence of the abbes,
|r10 that so ther rewarde may be the more in the syght of
     god, and not taken of hym for vayne glory, yf ei do
     otherwyse. In ther beddes, they schal sytte, and eue
     thankynges to god, with some special, but no longe
     prayers or they slepe. And after thys, |r[f.89b] they schal
|r15 blysse emself with In nomine patris, and slepe with
     sylence in pece. And the same wyse they schal do,
     whan they ryse to matens, at so they may say with the
     prophete: Si memor fui tui super stratum meum, in
     matutinis meditabor in te, quia fuisti adiutor meus.
|r20    Alle therfor schal be in the dortour in dewe
     tyme after complen, and none schal lyghe oute therof,
     nor go oute, withoute special licence of the souer_eyne
     or serches. And the officers muste take hede,
     that the dores be schette, suerly al aboute or they
|r25 go to bedde, and the serches, that e sustres be in
     ther celles, and lyghtes quenched, as it schal be |r[f.89c]
     expressed in the fyue and fyftyeth chapter.



|p178    |r[53]


        Neuertheles, in the dortour, schall be lyght euer
     brennynge, in suer plices, wynter and somer, from goyng
     down, into the sonne rysynge. Whan they go in the
     nyght tale, they schal neuer bere lyght withoute
 |r5 skonses; and whan they mete togyder, eche schal turne
     ther lyght from others faces. But yf any desire lyght,
     they schal gently eue it hem, yf they may abyde
     therto, hauynge a grete warnes euermore and a grete
     fere, how they bere it aboute, and a grete sykernes
|r10 that it be suerly quenched whan they put it oute.
     For a lytle sperkle may sette a grete |r[f.89d] wode on fyre.
     Moreouer, none schal go in to others celle, withoute
     special licence of the souereyne, outake them that be
     assygned to serche the dortour euery nyght, and them
|r15 that haue other vnder er governaunce.
        Neuertheles, yf any sodenly falle seke in the
     nyght in the dortour, than sche may knokke, or calle
     some suster to her, into her celle, as softly as sche
     kan for to helpe her. And yf any be importune of
|r20 cryeng or makyng of noyse, sche is to be had to the
     fermery for vnrestyng of other. If sche may abyde
     ther, and not unrest other into the morne, than a
     suster or two or mo, may comforte any suche |r[f.90a] with
     mete and drynke, yf nede be, and with softe and stylle
|r25 speche sadly by cause of sylence, all iapynge wordes
     leyd aparte; and therfor ther celles schal be withoute
     lokkes and keys.



|p179    |r[53]


     Of the cloyster et cetera.
        In the cloyster also, al muste kepe sylence and
     behaue em religiously, sadly, and soberly, and not go
     to faste nor dissolutly. And whan they mete togyder
 |r5 there, or in any other place, oute of the dortour,
     eche schal enclyne to other, a lytel bowynge ther
     hedes, the onger namely to the elder, eche hauynge
     other in reuerence[.] Whiche also is to be obserued,
     whan bey eue or receyue anythyng, or any seruyse of
|r10 other, thynk*ynge |r[f.90b] veryly, that al suche obsequy is
     done to god. But to the abbes whereuer they mete her,
     or passe by her, or sche by them, excepte be dortour
     as it is seyde before, or reredortour, they schal
     turne to her and mekly enclyne with al the body. For
|r15 love wioute reuerence, is but a chyldesch loue.
        Also none schall iutte vpon other whan they
     wasche ther handes conuentually, or otherwyse, nor
     spytte in the lauatory or aboute it, but yf they anone
     forthwith do it oute. Nor any schal presume to go
|r20 withoute her veyle and crown vpon her hede, nor to be
     seen bare hede, openly amonge the couente. Butt in |r[f.90c]
     ther celles, waschyng hows, and in suche oer places,
     they may do as nede and honeste requyreth.
        Also, not ferre from the chirche, they schall
|r25 haue a fyre howse, or chawfyng hows, wher they may
     warme them in wynter[.] And there, in that howse, they
     schal euer kepe sylence, excepte cristemas tyme, or
     els speke passyng softe, hauyng warnes euermore, that
     they falle not oute, into wordes of stryfe.



|p180    |r[54]


     .liiii.
        Of silence and taciturnite, and how the sustres
     schal behaue them in euery place, both inwarde and
     outewarde, in ther speche, chere, countynaunce, ston_dyng[,]
 |r5 syttynge, goynge, and suche other, thys |r[f.90d] is
     sufficiently expressed, in the fourtenth chapter, of
     thes addicions, which begynneth thus:
        In the chirche, quyer, freytour, et cetera.



|p181    |r[55]


     |r[f.91a] Fyue and fyftyeth chapter. Of the priores office
     and of the serches[.]
        Whan the office of the priores is voyde, the
     abbes by the counsell of the general confessour, and
 |r5 by the auyse of some of the elder or sadder sustres,
     hauyng the drede of god, schal ordeyne for another.
     Which al, condescendynge, and consentyng into one
     suster professed, able, wyse, discrete, and of gode
     name and fame, the abbes schal sette her, on her
|r10 lefte syde in the chapter howse, at the ende of the
     same benche, she is wonte to sytte on herselfe.
     Ande than to all the couent syttyng, the abbes schal
     say thus: Loo sustres, se and take hede, that / in |r[f.91b]
     our absence, e all obey to our suster here, whom I
|r15 haue ordeyned, to be priores of our monastery. And
     I wyll that e obey to her in alle thynges longynge
     to the kepyng of the order, like as e wolde do to
     me, yf I wer presente.
        To the whiche wordes, all schal enclyne, in
|r20 token of consente. And after thys, yf it be chapter
     day, the chapter ended with the preces folowynge,
     the couent schal go vp streght into ther quyer pro_cessionally
     the ongest before, and the abbes behynde,
     ledyng the priores on her lefte syde. Ande al
|r25 stondyng in ther stalles, quyer to quyer, the abbes
     schall take another suster to her, and stalle the |r[f.91c]
     priores, settyng her down in the fyrste stalle of
     the lefte syde of the quyer, and than go to her own
     stalle. And than all the couent outake the priores,



|p182    |r[55]


     schal knele down quyer to quyer, and say a Pater
     noster deuoutly and an Aue maria. Whiche ended,
     and a sygne made by the abbes, all schal ryse and
     enclyne to the este, and soberly go ther weyes,
 |r5 doyng what they wyll.
        Ande it is to be marked, that the priores, in
     the quyer, chapter, and freytour, and in all other
     places, schal kepe the lefte syde, stondyng and syt_tyng
     aboue al other sustres, thof sche be ongeste
|r10 of al in the order, goyng in processions with the
     elde*ste |r[f.91d] suster of the righte syde, or els behynde
     all, whan the nomber is odde, in absence of the abbes,
     as it scheweth before of e eghte chapter.
        Forthermore, as longe as sche standeth priores,
|r15 sche schal not be kalled by her proper name, but by
     the name of her office, that is to say, suster priores.
     Ande yf sche be founde vicious, or prowde in her
     office, or a despiser of the holy rewles or statutes
     of the monastery, the abbes, after certayn preuy
|r20 warnynges, schal warne her openly before the general
     confessour thryes, in the presence of all or of two
     or thre of the elder and sadder sustres. And yf sche
     wyl not amen*de |r[f.92a] by thys mene, sche schal put her
     oute of her office, and disciplyne, and correcte her,
|r25 after the gretenes of her trespas. And after thys,
     sche schal sytte in her order as other sustres do,
     and be called by her proper name, neuer to receyue
     office of worchyp after, but yf sche chaunge, and
     veryly amende her olde condicions, and evel maners



|p183    |r[55]


     effectually. Moreouer, in the absence of e abbes,
     the priores schal fulfylle al her spiritual offices,
     outake thynges that concerne the ebdomadaryes office,
     so that in al hygh principal festes, sche schal rede
 |r5 the secunde lesson atte matens. Forthermore, in the
     presen*ce |r[f.92b] of the abbes, sche schal nothyng do
     aboute correccions of defautes, but at her com_maundemente
     or sufferaunce.
        Also it is to be noted, that amonge the sustres,
|r10 schal euer be, foure serches at leste, of the whiche
     the priores schal euer be chefe by her office; and
     sche schal neuer chaunge her office withoute a grete
     resonable cause, as it is seyd before in thys same
     chapter. But al other officers, may be chaunged
|r15 eche ere, or more oftener, as the abbes seeth it
     expedyent, by the auyse of the more sadder party of
     her sustres, after the forme expressed before, in the
     thryttenth chapter of thes addicions. |r[f.92c] And thes,
     therfor schal be, and owe to be kalled Serches; for
|r20 to them principally, and namely to the priores, it
     belongeth to haue a gode eye aboute, and to serche
     diligently, yf the sustres behaue them religiously in
     euery place, and in al tymes and sesons; and how
     reguler obseruaunces, the order, and silence is kepte;
|r25 and to proclame suche in the chapter, as they fynde



|p184    |r[55]


     culpable of any defaute. Wherfor the abbes schal not
     sette euery suster in thys office generally, chesynge
     them oute by order; but sche schal chese oute suche,
     as be of sadde maners and condicions, of gode lyfe and
 |r5 gode ensamples, suche as longe haue stonde in reguler
     ob*seruauce |r[f.92d], and kanne wysely teche other; suche
     as haue a ele to kepe iustise wi godly charite;
     suche as wyl for no drede, hate, nor loue, spare the
     trowth; but be besy in al that they kan and may, to
|r10 kepe the commaundementes of god, and preceptes of ther
     souereyne; and suche as sche may suerly truste, to
     ley parte of her charge vpon them, be they of the
     ongest, or of the eldeste in religion.
        Of the whiche serches, one atte leste, depute by
|r15 the abbes, schal euery nyghte serche and se, sone
     after complen, whan they schal ryse erly on the
     morne, or about eght of the clokke at vtmeste, whan
     ther is none |r[f.93a] erly rysynge, yf the sustres be in
     ther celles, and wheyther they be alone, and how
|r20 they be occupyed; or yf any be oute of ther celles
     at the houre assygned by the abbes; and what is the
     cause; and whether er lyghtes be quenched[.] But
     no serche schal serche any sustres celle, nor any
     place of office, withoute special commaundemente of
|r25 the abbes.
        Thes therfor owe to be as veray myrrours of
     gode ensample and religious behauyng to other, pro_clamynge
     ther own defautes, moste mekly, and moste



|p185    |r[55]


     obediently take ther correccions, knowyng for certayne,
     that they stonde in more perell than other, yf |r[f.93b] they
     negligently, falle and trespas aenste e rewles or
     statutes, whyle the abbes putteth her synguler trust
 |r5 in them, to se that gode rewle be kepte in her absence.
     Wherfor they owe to be herde reuerently in ther ad_monicions
     and proclamacions of other. For to stryue
     ungodely with them or aenste hem, it is taken for a
     more greuous defaute; and for to labour of enuy, or
|r10 of rankour or malyce, for to depryue any of them of
     ther office, it is taken, for a moste greuous defaute,
     as it scheweth before, in the fourth and fyfte chaptres
     of thys boke. Neuertheles, thes be neuer wonte to be
     disciplyned for ther defautes whyle they stonde in |r[f.93c]
|r15 the office of serches; but the abbes may discharge
     any suster of that office, and commaunde her to take
     a disciplyne, and afterwarde charge her with the same
     office aene, or with another, as sche seeth it ex_pedient.



|p186    |r[56]


     Sex and fyftyeth chapter. Of the tresowres office
     et cetera.
        Under the kepyng of the tresoures and of her
     felawe, schal be put al the minymentes |r[f.93d] of the
 |r5 monastery and temporal godes, in golde and syluer and
     oer eftes. And yf it happe the abbes, for any
     cause resonable, that sche may not be aboute direccion
     of outewarde matyrs of the monastery, than thes two,
     in her stede, and in her name, schal be atte suche
|r10 matyrs, for to here, and answer, intende, and entro_met,
     or meddel, of suche matyrs, like as the abbes
     schold do it herselfe, outake in tyme of vacacion, as
     it is seyd in the xiite chapter.
        In the tresoury hows, schal be a grete cheste
|r15 with two dyuers lokkes and keyes, the tresoures
     kepyng that one, and her felawe that other, so that
     none of hem may |r[f.94a] open it, nor oweth to open it, nor
     brynge in, or take oute, eue or receyue anythynge,
     withoute knowlage of that other, for the more trewe
|r20 wyttenes to be had, and for to put away al affeccion
     of couetyse, and al occasion of suspicion of euell.
     Ande as ofte as any proctor, or receyver, or any
     fermer or other, brynge home any golde or syluer,
     es in the presence of the abbes schal receyue it,
|r25 by tayles or bylles endented with sufficient writynge,
     and put it vp in the seyd cheste to be kepte. And of
     thys money, they schal delyuer, also by bylles en_dented
     and sufficient writyng, to euery officer in



|p187    |r[56]


     |r[f.94b] warde and outwarde, as the office requyreth, after
     the conmaundement and assygnement of the abbes, so
     that they be not negligente of anythynge nor haue
     wordes of excusacion, makynge delay of any payment
 |r5 whan they may pay forthwith. Also, thes schal
     prouyde and pay for medycyns, spices, powdres, and
     suche other, after e disposicion of the abbes.
        Of the sexteynes office, it is spoken of before,
     in the xiviiiti chapter.
|r10 Of e chambres office.
        The chaumbres schal haue al the clothes in her
     warde, that perteyne to e bodyly araymente of
     sustres and breren, nyght and day, in ther celles
     and fermery, as |r[f.94c] wel of lynnen as of wollen,
|r15 schapynge, sewynge, makyng, repayryng, and kepyng
     them from wormes, schakyng them by e helpe of cer_tayne
     sustres depute to her, that they be not
     deuoured and consumed of moughtes. So that sche
     schal puruey for canuas for beddyng, fryses, blan_kettes,
|r20 schetes, bolsters, pelowes, couerlites,
     cuschens, basens, stamens, rewle cotes, cowles,
     mantelles, wymples, veyles, crownes, pynnes, cappes,
     nyght kerchyfes, pylches, mantel furres, cuffes,
     gloues, hoses, schoes, botes, soles, sokkes, mug_dors,
|r25 gyrdelles, purses, knyues, laces, poyntes,
     nedelles, threde, waschyng bolles, and sope; and
     for al suche other necessa*ryes |r[f.94d] after the disposicion



|p188    |r[56]


     of the abbes. Whiche in nowyse schal be ouer curyous,
     but playne and homly, withoute weuynge of any straunge
     coloures of sylke, golde, or syluer, havyng al thynge
     of honeste and profyte, and nothyng of vanyte, after
 |r5 e rewle; ther knyves vnpoynted, and purses beyng
     double of lynnen cloth, and not of sylke.
     Of the celeres office.
        The celeres schal puruey for mete and drynke for
     seke and hole, and for mete and drynke, clothe and
|r10 wages, for seruauntes of housholde outewarde. And
     sche schal haue all the vessel and stuffe of housholde,
     vnder her kepynge and rewle, kepynge it klene, ho*le |r[f.95a],
     and honeste. So at whan sche receyue newe, sche
     moste restore the olde to the abbes. Ordeynyng for
|r15 all necessaryes longynge to al houses of offices,
     concernyng the bodyly fode of man, in the bakhows,
     brewhouse, kychen, buttry, pantry, celer, freytour,
     fermery, parlour, and suche other, both outwarde and
     inwarde, for straungers and dwellers, attendyng dili_gently
|r20 that the napry, and al other thynge in her
     office, be honest, profitable, and plesaunte to al,
     after her power, as sche is commaunded by her souer_eyne.
     
        Ande as for the sustres, and brethren, sche shal
|r25 euery day for the more parte, ordeyn |r[f.95b] for two maner
     of potages, or els at leste for one gode, and that is
     best of alle. If er be two, that one may be sewe,
     of flesch or of fysch, after the day is, and that other
     of wortes or herbes, or of any other ing that groweth
|r30 of the erth holsom to the body, as whete, ryse, ote_mele,



|p189    [56]


     peson, and suche other. Also sche schal ordeyne
     for two sundry metes, of flesche or of fysch, one
     fresche, another powdred, boyled, or rosted, or other
     wyse dyght, after her discrecion, aand after the day,
 |r5 tyme, and nede requyre, as the market and purse wyll
     stretche. Ande thys schal stonde for the prebende,
     which is a pounde of brede, well weyed, with a potel
     of ale, and a |r[f.95c] messe of mete. Also besyde al thys,
     she schal ordeyne for a pytaunce, and take gode hede,
|r10 that all be holsom and well sesonned, tender and goode;
     and that it be honestly serued forth, al hote, or
     other wyse as the mete requyreth, in dewe mesure, both
     in qualite and in quantite.
        If the prebende be symple, it is to be restored
|r15 with e pytaunce. If it be goode and sufficiente,
     to go rownde aboute, than no fors what the pytaunce
     be.
        On fysch dayes, sche schal ordeyn for whyte metes
     yf any may be hadde after the rewle, besyde fysch
|r20 metes, as it is before seyd. Also, ones a wyke at
     the leste, sche shal |r[f.95d] ordeyne that the sustres and
     brethren be serued with newe brede, namely on water
     dayes; but neuer with newe ale, nor palled or ouer
     sowre, as moche as sche may.
|r25 For supper, sche schal ordeyn for som lytel
     sowpyng, and for fysch and whyte mete, or for any
     oer thynge suffred by the rewle, lyght of dygestyon,



|p190    |r[56]


     equyualente and as gode to the bodyly helthe, after the
     discrecion of the souereynes, that the seruauntes of
     god may strongly contynewe in hys seruyse.
        On water dayes, sche schal ordeyne for bonnes,
 |r5 or newe brede, water growel, albreys, and for two
     maner of froytes at leste yf |r[f.96a] it may be. That is
     to say, apples, peres, or nuttes, plummes, chiryes,
     benes, peson or any suche other; and thys in com_petent
     mesure, rosted or sothen, or other wyse dyght
|r10 to the bodyly helth. And sche must se, that the
     water be sothen with brown brede in maner of a tysan,
     or with barly brede, for coldenes and feblenes of
     nature, more thys dayes, than in dayes passed
     regnynge.
|r15 Of the kepers of the wheyles and gates or crates et
     cetera.
        At the wheyle for to kepe it, schal be ordeyned
     two sustres by the abbes. Whyche by the same whele,
     schal take, and delyuer oute, or in, al thynges
|r20 necessary to the bre*thren |r[f.96b]. Whiche none other
     schal do but they, and certayn officers, as the
     tresoures, sextayn, chambres, celeres, and suche oer,
     withoute speciall licence of the abbes. Thes therfor
     owe to haue bysy attendaunce, that as ofte as they
|r25 here any ryngynge or knokkyng atte whele, nyghte or
     day, anone they hygh them thyder, at leste one of
     them, to wyte what the brethren wyll, and to eve
     them an answer, in sylence tyme and other, withoute
     multyplyeng of wordes, or tellyng of tales and fables
|r30 nothyng to purpose; but ther cause knowen and the



|p191    |r[56]


     answer in fewe wordes ouen, they schal schett the
     whele and go ther |r[f.96c] weyes.
        Also they muste haue warenes of moche speche
     there, and of moche ryngyng withoute a nedeful cause.
 |r5 For outake only for ther office, they owe to speke
     ther, no more than other sustres; nor et with the
     keper of the same whele on the brether syde withoute
     special licence of the abbes. Withoute whos counsell
     and licence, they schal do no message to any suster
|r10 or brother, nor receyve, or delyuer anythynge, small
     nor grete, for hemself, or for any oer.
        Alle other sustres schal kepe ther silence
     there, outake e forseyde officers for ther office.
     Saue whan they wyl spe*ke |r[f.96d] with any of the brethren,
|r15 they schal kepe the forme expressed tofore in e
     fourtenth chapter, evyng, nor takyng any eftes of
     other withoute knowlage and leue of ther souereynes,
     asked of themselfe, or by the seyd kepers of the
     wheyle.
|r20    And after the seyd forme, all other officers
     schal kepe ther offices at the grates, gates, and
     in al other places[.] So that no gate, nor dore, be
     opened outewarde, whyle other sustres be presente,
     that they be not seen of seculers; and that they be
|r25 honeste and klenly in ther offices, doynge nothyng
     wytyngly aenst the wyll of ther souereyne, or of
     the serches, assyg*ned |r[f.97a] by be abbes to haue ouer



|p192    |r[56]


     syght of euery suche office as ofte as and as longe as
     sche seeth it expedient.
        Also, she that schal schet the garden gate, schal
     knokke myghtly thervpon or sche schet it, that no
 |r5 suster lye in the garden al nyghte.



|p193    |r[57]


     Seuen and fyftyeth chapter. Of the fermerye, parloure
     and of the fermeres[.]
        Seth our lorde ihesu criste, taketh that is done
     to the seke, as yf it wer done to hymselfe, the abbes
 |r5 oweth to haue grete |r[f.97b] tendernes ouer em, that they be
     not forslewed of ther kepers[.] Wherfor like as er
     be dyuers infirmitees, so ther owen to be dyuers howses
     to kepe hem in. One for al maner sekenes, as is the
     comen fermery; another for them that be in recouer_ynge,
|r10 as is e comen parlour; another for them that be
     distracte of ther mendes; another for lepres, stondyng
     fer from al other, so et that the sustres may come to
     them and comforte hem.
        If any suster be so seke, that sche may not be
|r15 couered, withoute medycyne, sche schal be brought to
     the crates to the phisician. So that the phisician
     come not in |r[f.97c] to the monastery in any wyse, but for a
     very necessary cause.
        To kepynge of the seke in e fermery, schal be
|r20 depute suche a suster by the abbes, that dredeth god,
     hauyng a diligence aboute hem for hys loue, and kan
     skylle for to do seruyse to them. Stronge and myghty
     to lefte them vp, and lede them from place to place.
     Whan nede is, to the chirche or fermery chapel; and
|r25 kan exhorte, styrre, and comforte them, to be con_fessed,
     and receyue the sacramentes of holy chirche.
     Ofte chaunge ther beddes and clothes, eue them
     medycynes, ley to ther plastres, and mynyster to
     them mete and drynke, fyre and water, and |r[f.97d] al other
|r30 necessaryes, nyght and day, as nede requyreth; after



|p194    |r[57]


     counsel of the phisicians, and precepte of the souer_eyne.
     Not squaymes to wasch them and wype them, or
     auoyde hem; not angry nor hasty, or vnpacient, thof
     one haue the vomet, another the fluxe, another the
 |r5 frensy, whiche nowe syngeth, nowe cryeth, nowe
     lawgheth, now wepeth, nowe chydeth, nowe fyghteth,
     nowe is wroth, now wel apayde. For er be some
     sekenesses vexynge the seke so gretly and prouokynge
     them to ire that the mater drawen vp to the brayne,
|r10 alyenth ther mendes. And erfor they owe to haue
     moche pacience |r[f.98a] with suche, that they may therby,
     gete them an euerlastynge crowne.
        Aenewarde, the seke owe not to be to importune
     vpon ther kepers; nor to prouoke them to vnpacience;
|r15 nor make them sory, desyrynge nowe one thynge, nowe
     another. Thynkynge inwardly, at yf they paciently
     suffer ther bodily sekenes in thys presente lyfe, it
     schal stonde for ther purgatory in tyme to come.
     And for a lytel payne here esyly suffred, they schal
|r20 gete them euerlastyng blysse.
        Forthermore, suche at for sekenes, may not
     lye in ther stamens, may by lycence of the souer_eyn
     |r[f.98b] lygh in lynnen, or in schetes. And ey may
     some tyme be born into the garden, for to take open
|r25 eyre; but none shal speke to them nor come wher they
     be, withoute leue of e abbes outake her kepers, but
     yf they be kalled of the seke, namely whan they wyll
     take ther rest, or receyue any medycyns or mete. So



|p195    |r[57]


     et that they viset them amonge in dewe tyme, thynkyng
     on our lordes saynge: I was seke, and e dyd visitte
     me.
        Moreouer, the sustres that be in the fermery,
 |r5 schal kepe the same obseruaunce in saynge of graces
     and kepynge of sylence with suche oer, as the couente
     doeth in the freytour, but |r[f.98c] yf the sekenes be e
     gretter, or that the abbes eue licence to speke, to
     the comforte of the seke. Saue than before mete on
|r10 sowpynge dayes, they schall say: Deus caritas. On
     fastynge days Gracia domini nostri; but in lenton:
     Frange esurienti. At supper, they schal euer say:
     Gracia domini nostri.
        Also after they be sette down, one of hem schal
|r15 rede some gode lesson, or euer they begyn to ete; or
     els kepe ther silence, tyl e president sayeth Bene_dicite.
     For than they schal answer Dominus; and than
     they may speke in styl wordes, so that they excede
     not er boundes nor tyme of syttynge; nor et speke
|r20 any sclaunde*rous |r[f.98d], or euel worde of any person.
     Ande the same obseruaunce and forme, schal be kepte in
     the parlour.
     Of the anelynge of the seke, et cetera.
        Forthermore, whan any suster is to be aneled, the
|r25 fermeres schal ordeyn for seuen balles of tough in a
     kuppe that may be brente, by the aduyse of the sexten,
     on the brethre syde; and sche schal neuer be withoute



|p196    |r[57]


     crosse, holy water and holy candel in the fermery.
     Also sche schal ordeyne for salte and bran in two
     sawcers, and for a basen and ewer of warme water,
     with a towel, alle beyng vpon a stedfaste table,
 |r5 couered with a fayre borde clothe, and not vpon a
     totrynge stole. |r[f.99a]
        They that be anelyd, schal aske foreuenes of the
     abbes and of al the sustres in conueniente tyme, of al
     euel ensamples by them schewed; and from that they be
|r10 aneled, into they departe, or els recouer, they shal
     haue two sustres at leste, depute by the abbes to
     tende vpon them day and nyghte.
     Of preces for em at be aneled.
        And nyne dayes togyder after any suster or brother
|r15 is aneled, yf they lyue so longe, the sustres schal say
     conuentually, knelyng in er quyer, syde by syde
     withoute note, is preces folowyng:
        Miserere mei deus with Gloria patri. Kyrieleison.
     Christeeleison. Kyrieleison. Pater noster. Aue
|r20 maria. Et |r[f.99b] ne nos. Ostende nobis, et cetera. Oremus.
     Omnipotens sempiterne deus, salus eterna. If they
     schal passe, than say thys collecte: Omnipotens sempi_terne
     deus conseruator animarum. Neuertheles, suche
     sustres as kan not say the seyd preces, schal eche day
|r25 say in stede erof, nyen Pater nostres, and nyen Aues
     and a Crede, as it scheweth in the seuen and fourtyeth
     chapter before[.]
     Of them that lygh in passynge.
        Whan any suster or brother lygheth in passynge,
|r30 the grete bell schal be tolled on the brether syde.



|p197    |r[57]


     And than the couente schal come togyder and say the
     letany and suffrages that longen therto, knelynge
     besyde the body or els in the chirche, yf it be a
     broer. |r[f.99c] And after thys, yf the sowle be passed,
 |r5 they schal say De profundis with Deus cui proprium
     the lasse, and Fidelium deus; and than they schal
     take a disciplyne in ther chapter, what day or tyme
     it be, in the ere.
        Neuertheles, yf any passe whyle the couente is
|r10 in dyuyne seruyse, the abbes schall commaunde certayn
     sustres to say the seyd suffrages; and afterwarde,
     other sustres that haue not seyd it, schall say it
     alone, or with a felawe; or in the comente; for
     thys is an obseruaunce, that al be bounde to be atte,
|r15 to ther power.
        Of the suffrages to be seyd within thrytty dayes,
     for euery suster and |r[f.99d] brother, after the tyme of
     ther passage, thys scheweth before, in the nyen
     chapter, and in the seuen and fourtyeth chapter of
|r20 thes addicions.



|p198    |r[58]


     Eght and fyftyeth chapter. Of the abbes and confessour,
     how ei schal behaue them.
        The abbes and general confessour, owe to be as
     fader and moder, to the hole congregacion of sustres
 |r5 and brethren. Of gode / name and fame, of honeste   |r[f.100a]
     lyfe and holy conuersacion, sadde in maners, prudent
     and wakyr. No mysdemers, nor suspicious, no sur_fetours,
     nor to delicious, no ianglers, nor to grete
     spekers. But sober, chaste, mylde and meke, benygne,
|r10 and pesyble, dreders of god, and hym euer hauynge
     before ther eyen; louynge none, more than another,
     but suche as they fynde better in gode dedes and / meke
     obedience. And et they schal not suffer them to be
     more cherysched than oer, but yf sekenes or age, or
|r15 els very nede requyre it. And for the confessour is
     conseruatour of the order, he schal |r[f.100b] attende wysely,
     that the rewle be kepte in al poyntes, as wel amonge
     the sustres as amonge the brethren; ande feythfully
     assiste the abbes in the same, as for her parte,
|r20 conseruacion of the gode state and godes of the
     monastery. Ande for the abbes is hede and lady of
     the monastery, and is to be counseled of the dis_posicion
     of the godes therof, sche schal haue grete
     warnes, that sche use not to take ouer moche counsel
|r25 of seculers, withoute the counsel and knowlage of the
     general confessour. For many relygious haue suffred
     many tribulacions, by cause they haue re*ueled |r[f.100c] the
     secrecies of ther monasteries to outwarde seculers.



|p199    |r[58]


        If therfor any harde case begyn to growe to the
     monastery, comen prayers schal fyrst be had. Ande
     than before suche matyrs go outewarde, the abbes and
     confessour schal trete togyder with some of the moste
 |r5 discrete sustres and brethren, or with the holer and
     sadder parte of the congregacion, therto called and
     requyred, yf it be expedient; or els with all the
     hole congregacion, for to eschewe the murmur and
     grudgyng of alle.
|r10 Neuertheles, ei schal haue warnes, that they
     meddle not with seculer |r[f.100d] iurisdiccion, that con_cerneth
     the kynges or any buschops lawes; nor of the
     bondes or prisons of any seculers, oer wyse than
     they be premunyte by special pryuyleges; and that
|r15 ther be no thynge seled with the comen sele, nor with
     any other sele or synett, other wyse than the pope
     hath ordeyned. Also they schal haue grete warenes
     that they mysvse not ther fre power, nor delyte hem
     in the synne of properte; nor to appere more notable
|r20 than oer,in ther habite; nor do more delicate metes
     and drynkes to be made for em, than the comente
     hathe, but yf any special sekenes, or |r[f.101a] feblenes, or
     any oer resonable cause requyre it. For the hygher
     they stonde aboue other in prelacy, the more ei be
|r25 bownde to obserue the preceptes of the rewle.
        Of e seke they owe to haue grete cure, that of
     ther kepers, they be not serued neglygently. And they



|p200    |r[58]



     schal not forete to dispense amonge with the hole,
     to ther comforte and recreacion, after e forme
     expressed in the fyftyeth and one and fyftyeth
     chapters of thys boke. But them schal suffer no
 |r5 dogges, nor bestes, bryddes, nor fowles, to be kepte
     and norysched within the clausures; nor none other
     wondres that |r[f.101b] myghte styrre them to lyghtnes and
     vnsadnes; or cause any vice to growe and encrese.
     Thes also may speke togyder in sylence tyme in al
|r10 places, so that it be of the very necessaryes of
     the monastery; and also licence other to do e
     same.
        Also the abbes, schal serche the sustres celles
     and other places, ones in e ere, or more, or
|r15 lesse, to se that eche suster haue her necessaryes
     and no more. And therfor they schal ley ther gere
     togyder so openly, yf they kan vnderstonde whan
     sche wyl serche; whiche sche is not bounde to telle,
     but of her fre choyce; that it may be redyly seyne at
|r20 the |r[f.101c] fyrste syghte, wioute any fraude. For whoso
     wytyngly, hyde and inge from ther souereyne, or from
     any assygned by her to serche, sche schal yf it be
     openly proued, be corrected as a propretary, but yf
     sche mekly knowlage her own trespas[.]
|r25 Moreouer, for e abbes hathe to entende to
     inges, and may not euery houre be amonge the couente,
     she schal haue a congrue hows, or a lytel celle or
     chamber, wherin both wynter and somer, sche may reken
     wyth her sustres, and trete of matyrs of the monastery.



|p201    |r[58]


     And ther sche may ete and drynke and slepe, as ofte
     as sche may |r[f.101d] not conueniently come in dewe tyme to
     the freytour or dortour. To whom, two sustres,
     honeste, pesible, and trusty, suche as sche wyll chese,
 |r5 or atte leste one, schal attende contynually nyght and
     day, mynistryng to her diligently and obediently, of
     al her necessaryes, as it is accordynge for sugettes
     to do to ther souereyne.
        Forthermore, to the general confessour and neuer
|r10 to none other withoute hys graunte, sche schal make
     her confession. To whom also al the professes be
     bounde, to open er hertes in confessyon, thryes in
     the ere at leste. In e whiche et, they be not
     bounde to telle |r[f.102a] ther synnes confessed tofore, but
|r15 yf it be suche synnes, at he hath reserued the ab_solucion
     of them only to hymselfe. Saue they owe to
     telle, what greuous temptacions they be wonte to fele,
     and ther affeccions, and what difficulte they haue, in
     kepynge of the order. Neuertheles, yf they wyl con_fesse
|r20 al ther synnes that they kan remembre they haue
     done from ther byrth, it schal be to ther more meryte
     and hygher crowne in heuen.
        Therfor, the abbes and confessour remembryng
     that they be freyl, made of slyme of the erth, owe
|r25 to be merciful to hem that be freyl. And for they be
     sett in souereynte, they |r[f.102b] owe to revolue ofte in
     mende, that the more is commytted to them, the more
     schal be asked of em. Knowyng wel, at they haue



|p202    |r[58]


     take an harde thynge vpon them, for to rewle sowles,
     and conforme them to the maners of many. Thynke they
     therfor, what grete charge they haue take vpon them,
     and to whom they muste elde a rekenynge; and that it
 |r5 byhoueth to see, how they may profite, more than to

     stonde in souereynte, exaltyng mercy in al ther iuge_mentes,
     as they may gete the mercy of god to them_selfe.
     Hate they vices, and loue they ther sugettes,
     werkyng prudently aboute |r[f.102c] hem, in correccion of de_fautes.
|r10 Haue they euermore, er own freylte suspecte,
     and thynke that the brosed rede is not to be broken.
     Neuertheles, they schal suffer no vice to sprynge,
     but prudently and with charyte kytte it of, studyeng
     more to be loued, than to be dredde.
|r15    Moreouer, in thes cases, the buschop visitour,
     may correcte, or depryue the abbes or general confes_sour
     of ther offices.
        1. Fyrste, yf the abbes selle, alyen, or ley to
     weddes; or els leue, or chaunge the godes of e
|r20 monastery, ryghtwysly goten, for goodes of the whiche
     it is dowteful, wheyther they be ritwysly go_ten |r[f.102d]
     or no, sche is depryued in the same dede, do sche it
     wi the consente, or withoute the consente of sustres
     and breren.
|r25    2. Also yf the abbes, or confessour, or any
     suster or brother, or any other persone of the
     monastery, by any maner colour, eue anythynge to the
     buschop, excepte mete and drynke, for any visitacion,
     or for any ordynary office, by hym to be done in the
|r30 monasterye. For the whiche besyde pryuacion of er



|p203    |r[58]


     offices, they schal be sette in pryson, viiite dayes,
     and ones disciplyned et cetera.
        3. Also yf the abbes or any suster, occupyeng
     her stede, after thryes warnynge, puruey not |r[f.103a] for
 |r5 necessaryes to sustres and brethren, they ar depryued
     in the self dede, neuer to be promoted to any office
     after.
        4. Also, yf the abbes or confessour, or any
     suster or brother, purchas, or attempte to purchas,
|r10 anythynge aenste the rewle, in the self dede they be
     depryued of all maner offices, and be vnable to the
     office of the abbes, pryores, general confessour, and
     herynge of confessions, inwarde and outwarde, for_euermore.
     
|r15    5. Also, yf the abbes or confessour, dissymyll
     for to correcte defautes or trespas, in themselfe
     or other, wherby infamy groweth to the monaste*ry |r[f.103b],
     they schal be dewly corrected by the buschop.
        6. Also yf they be so aged, that they may not
|r20 perfytly or sufficiently performe ther office. Or
     els be laboured with uncurable sekenes, or be im_potente[.]
     Or els haue more ele to ther carnall
     frendes, than to god and to sowles, into e hurte of
     the rewle. Or els be despysers of the holy rewle,
|r25 and of the helth of ther sustres and brethren.
        7. Also yf that they be dissipatours of the
     godes of the monastery. Or yf they be negligente



|p204    |r[58]


     or repreuable in er offices, and by no monycyon
     wylle amende them.
        For the whiche and other lyke cases, ex*pres_sed |r[f.103c]
     in party tofore in the tenthe chapter, yf it be
 |r5 the abbes, she schal be warned secretly twyes or
     thryes, by the confessour and elder or sadder sustres
     and brethren, with charite and dewe reuerence. If it
     be e confessour, by the abbes and sustres and breth_ren
     in lyke wyse. And yf they wyl not here them,
|r10 they schal be spoken to openly before al the sustres
     and brethren, and prayd with dewe reuerence for to
     amende. If they wyl not cese be thys, the buschop
     schal admonysche them. And yf they amende not by
     none of thes menes, the buschop schal depose them,
|r15 after to be entreted as the buschop with the ho_le |r[f.103d]
     congregacion thynke it beste, the worschyp of the
     religion saued and kepte.
        Thys alway provyded, that yf any of them for
     age, or impotency, or for vncurable sekenes as it is
|r20 seyd before, or for any other cause alowable, frely
     eue vp hys office, suche one from thens forwarde,
     schall be taken for the eldest in order, lyuyng
     vnder the obedience of hys souereyn. So that yf it
     were the abbes, sche schalle stonde, and sytte, and
|r25 go aboue al other outake the presidente, euer to be
     had in dewe reuerence, and worchyp of alle. And
     sche schal haue oo suster atte leste, to tende vpon
     her, and to mynyster |r[f.104a] to her of al her necessaryes



|p205    |r[58]


     charitably as longe as se lyue[.]   And the same is to
     be vnderstonde, of the general confessour amonge the
     brethren.
     Of keyes.
 |r5   Moreouer in e monasterye schal be two strong
     chestes, eche hauyng thre lytel keyes, none lyke
     another. In the whiche chestes, schal be two grete
     keyes, also none lyke another, of the profession
     dore goynge into the sustres clausure. Oo cheste
|r10 with hys key, schal stonde on the sustres syde,
     vnder the kepynge of the abbes, and of oer two
     sustres that haue drede of god, eche of them kepynge
     one of the lytel keyes, and the abbes be |r[f.104b] thrydde.
     That other cheste with hys key schal stonde on the
|r15 brethren syde, vnder the warde of the general con_fessour
     and of two brethren in lyke wyse. So that
     none of hem, open any of the seyd chestes at any
     tyme withoute knowlage of other; that so al occasion
     of sclaunder, be vtterly take away, both outwarde and
|r20 inwarde. Oer keyes schal be vnder kepynge of the
     officers, so that the abbes haue a key of euery office,
     yf sche wylle.
     Of the charge in expenses.
        The charge of the monastery in expenses, stondeth
|r25 in tne expenses aboute mete and drynke and clothe,
     wages, fees, lyueryes, eftes, |r[f.104c] rewardes.



|p206    |r[58]


 |r[from_Aungier,_op._cit.,_p._403]
     **** physyk **** professional ****
     rynges **** bokes, belles, chalices ****
     any suche other thynge longynge to the monastery,
     whiche al recyted, rekoned, and, leyed togyder as wel
     of the ere to come as of the ere passed with al
     **** of losses, and the **** is superflus,
     and therefore it schal be feythfully distributed to
     the pore and nedy uppon al soule day, after that
     ****
        0f the general accountes, et caetera.
        Wher *** the abbes besyde the dayly or
     wykly accountes wonte to be made schal receyve a
     general accounte before the feste of al halowen of
     all the godes of the monastery clerly and ***
     by *** al other officers *** to her accountable,
     outewarde and inwarde, before some of the other or
     sadder sustres. And the general confessour under_stondyng
     by the abbes **** and by the seyd ****
     that al the seyd accounte is trewly and **** made
     he schal make relation thereof to hys brethren
     ****** the brethrem **** to **********
